Selected quad for the lemma: opinion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
opinion_n church_n council_n trent_n 1,107 5 10.4717 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A00294 A booke intituled, The English Protestants recantation, in mattersof religion wherein is demonstratiuely proued, by the writings of the principall, and best learned English Protestant bishops, and doctors, and rules of their religion, published allowed, or subscribed vnto, bythem, since the comminge of our King Iames into England, that not onely all generall grownds of diuinitie, are against the[m], but in euery particular cheife question, betweene Catholicks & them, they are in errour, by their owne iudgments : diuided accordingly, into two parts, whereof the first entreateth of those generall grounds, the other of such particular controuersies, whereby will also manifestely appeare the vanitie of D. Morton Protest. Bishop of Chester his boke called Appeale, or, Ansuueare to the Catholicke authour of thebooke entituled, The Protestants apologie. Broughton, Richard. 1617 (1617) STC 10414; ESTC S2109 209,404 418

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o s._n paul_n how_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o in_o who_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v be_v urge_v to_o 10._o rom._n 10._o prove_v that_o faith_n go_v before_o prayer_n and_o other_o good_a work_n without_o which_o they_o teach_v a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v and_o which_o themselves_o urge_v in_o a_o sense_n like_a to_o that_o as_o they_o though_o untrue_o suppose_v against_o prayer_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o who_o we_o do_v believe_v yet_o the_o believe_v although_o not_o in_o they_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v to_o they_o suffice_v in_o that_o case_n he_o make_v his_o suppose_a faith_n a_o very_a chimericall_a fiction_n and_o no_o true_a real_a thing_n of_o that_o nature_n but_o be_v force_v to_o this_o absurdity_n to_o say_v assure_v faith_n and_o prayer_n proceed_v after_o 209._o wotton_n def_n of_o perkins_n pag._n 209._o faith_n be_v simul_fw-la tempore_fw-la both_o together_o in_o the_o same_o instant_n of_o time_n which_o be_v unpossible_a be_v diverse_a distinct_a act_n specify_v from_o diverse_a object_n produce_v by_o diverse_a power_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o soul_n one_o precedent_n go_v before_o the_o other_o follow_v and_z to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n proceed_v after_o therefore_o by_o himself_o except_o before_o and_o after_o prius_fw-la &_o posterius_fw-la be_v simul_fw-la and_o simul_fw-la tempore_fw-la together_o and_o together_o in_o time_n which_o every_o young_a logician_n in_o cambridge_n will_v tell_v he_o be_v most_o childish_a and_o absurd_a both_o this_o his_o answer_n be_v a_o new_a gross_a absurdity_n and_o that_o his_o former_a doctrine_n that_o can_v be_v otherwise_o defend_v be_v of_o like_a quality_n which_o will_v more_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o argument_n by_o this_o man_n divinity_n also_o therefore_o i_o argue_v far_o thus_o nothing_o that_o want_v assurednes_n but_o have_v doubteinge_v and_o be_v not_o without_o doubt_n can_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o protestant_a position_n even_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n want_v assurednes_n have_v doubt_v and_o be_v not_o without_o doubt_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o true_a faith_n the_o mayor_n or_o first_o proposition_n be_v so_o certain_o true_a that_o protestant_n general_o acknowledge_v as_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a than_o faith_n for_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o unfallible_a word_n and_o revelation_n of_o god_n which_o it_o most_o undoubted_o certain_a true_a assure_a and_o without_o all_o doubt_n unpossible_a to_o be_v otherwise_o ●f_n god_n be_v god_n and_o truth_n itself_o how_o can_v there_o be_v any_o place_n of_o doubt_n of_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n and_o therefore_o that_o common_a saye_v dubius_n in_o fide_fw-la est_fw-la infidelis_fw-la he_o that_o doubt_v in_o faith_n be_v a_o infidel_n so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v make_v god_n unworthe_n to_o be_v beleve_v be_v ordinary_o allow_v with_o protestant_n the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v also_o prove_v by_o protestant_n and_o m._n wotton_n himself_o wittness_v of_o this_o their_o imagine_a faith_n in_o these_o word_n without_o doubt_v it_o be_v not_o and_o again_o in_o this_o 161._o wotton_n def_n of_o perkins_n pag._n 135._o 152._o pag._n 161._o manner_n i_o may_v grant_v the_o faithful_a ordinary_o be_v not_o assure_v of_o their_o salvation_n by_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o have_v no_o doubte_v in_o it_o and_o further_a thus_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o without_o some_o doubte_a and_o our_o feele_n not_o so_o strong_a as_o it_o shall_v and_o may_v be_v and_o they_o have_v speak_v so_o long_o in_o defence_n of_o this_o their_o fantastical_a faith_n that_o they_o prove_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v a_o sound_n and_o certain_a faith_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o general_o believe_v of_o all_o except_v atheist_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n for_o among_o protestant_n the_o same_o protestant_a faith_n there_o be_v such_o doubt_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o no._n wherefore_o m._n parkes_n a_o protestant_a writer_n among_o they_o may_v just_o speak_v of_o his_o english_a fellow_n in_o religion_n in_o this_o manner_n heresy_n and_o infidelity_n join_v and_o labour_v to_o subvert_v pref_o parkes_n apol._n pref_o and_o overthrow_v all_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n thus_o he_o of_o these_o protestant_n again_o i_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n from_o the_o 16._o article_n of_o their_o religion_n where_o it_o be_v thus_o 16._o artic._n 16._o define_v after_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v depart_v from_o grace_n and_o fall_v into_o sin_v and_o after_o it_o teach_v that_o true_a repentance_n procure_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_v now_o this_o true_a repentance_n either_o go_v before_o or_o follow_v this_o their_o imagine_a iustifie_v faith_n if_o it_o go_v before_o this_o their_o faith_n than_o that_o faith_n justifi_v not_o because_o man_n be_v make_v just_a before_o any_o act_n of_o that_o apply_v faith_n be_v exercise_v if_o this_o repentance_n follow_v than_o again_o that_o their_o suppose_a faith_n do_v not_o justify_v for_o by_o their_o own_o doctrine_n a_o sinner_n impenitent_a be_v not_o just_a for_o their_o apply_v faith_n be_v to_o apply_v as_o they_o say_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n unto_o we_o but_o christ_n in_o scripture_n be_v so_o fare_v from_o promisinge_a salvation_n to_o man_n impenitent_a that_o he_o promise_v and_o denownce_v damnation_n that_o both_o these_o act_n shall_v be_v together_o be_v unpossible_a as_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v against_o m._n wotton_n in_o the_o like_a case_n before_o this_o be_v also_o prove_v by_o the_o argument_n concern_v predestination_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o those_o protestant_n which_o hold_n this_o justification_n by_o faith_n defend_v also_o assurednes_n of_o predestination_n teach_v that_o every_o one_o that_o be_v at_o any_o time_n just_a be_v predestinate_a and_o so_o the_o one_o be_v as_o well_o know_v unto_o they_o as_o the_o other_o and_o either_o of_o they_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n with_o these_o man_n again_o faith_n and_o hope_n be_v distinguish_v faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v hope_v i'faith_o hope_n charity_n these_o three_o but_o where_o there_o be_v assure_v faith_n to_o obtain_v a_o thing_n or_o have_v a_o thing_n hope_n be_v there_o evacuate_v again_o these_o protestant_n with_o the_o scripture_n grant_v that_o the_o just_a and_o justify_v be_v in_o heaven_n but_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n be_v evacuate_v by_o beatifical_a vision_n therefore_o justice_n be_v not_o by_o faith_n again_o faith_n be_v not_o discursyve_a d._n feild_n 85._o feild_n pag._n 226._o covell_a def_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 85._o write_v as_o truth_n be_v that_o private_a interpretation_n bound_v not_o and_z d._n covell_n say_v doctrine_n derive_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o they_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o all_o these_o pretence_a faith_n of_o these_o protestant_n be_v only_a their_o own_o private_a interpretation_n application_n and_o derive_v doctryne_n for_o no_o scripture_n say_v that_o any_o one_o protestant_a in_o particular_a d._n willet_n d._n powell_n or_o other_o be_v justify_v or_o shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o no_o faith_n much_o less_o justify_v faith_n chapter_n iii_o wherein_o by_o these_o present_a english_a protestant_n writer_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o inherent_a grace_n and_o justice_n be_v prove_v against_o the_o same_o protestant_n and_o their_o opinion_n now_o it_o will_v be_v no_o difficulty_n for_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o believe_v doctrine_n of_o inherent_a grace_n ●ustice_n &_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n if_o he_o will_v as_o all_o christian_n do_v be_v aught_o grant_v and_o believe_v any_o justification_n at_o all_o for_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n be_v even_o by_o protestant_n our_o adversary_n themselves_o confute_v that_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n must_v needs_o be_v true_a in_o which_o question_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o catholic_n 11._o council_n trid._n sess_v 6._o can_n 11._o define_v thus_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v a_o man_n be_v justify_v either_o by_o only_a imputation_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o only_a remission_n of_o syn_n exclude_v grace_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v diffuse_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v inherent_a or_o that_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v be_v only_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n for_o proof_n of_o which_o doctrine_n even_o by_o my_o country_n protestant_n and_o to_o procure_v their_o conformity_n as_o they_o ought_v first_o i_o argue_v thus_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v degree_n of_o inherent_a justice_n and_o man_n more_o or_o less_o according_o so_o justify_v there_o must_v needs_o be_v inherent_a justice_n and_o justification_n by_o
before_o all_o other_o and_o both_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n isidore_n and_o these_o protestant_n themselves_o be_v think_v the_o best_a translation_n and_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o be_v accordinge_o to_o be_v allow_v esteem_v and_o prefer_v but_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n by_o these_o protestant_n be_v such_o therefore_o even_o by_o they_o so_o to_o be_v allow_v and_o prefer_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v manifest_o true_a for_o that_o which_o be_v so_o ancient_a in_o the_o true_a latin_a church_n and_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o must_v needs_o be_v allow_v and_o prefer_v the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v prove_v as_o follow_v first_o their_o bishop_n d_o dove_n write_v in_o these_o word_n of_o this_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n we_o protestant_n grant_v it_o 16._o dove_n persuas_fw-la pag._n 16._o fit_a that_o for_o uniformity_n in_o quotation_n of_o place_n in_o school_n and_o pulpit_n one_o latin_a text_n shall_v be_v use_v and_o we_o can_v be_v content_v for_o the_o antiquity_n thereof_o to_o prefer_v the_o old_a vulgar_a translation_n before_o all_o other_o latin_a book_n so_o much_o we_o do_v yield_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n d._n covell_n entreateinge_v of_o translation_n of_o scripture_n against_o burges_n the_o puritan_n 94._o covell_n against_o burges_n pag._n 94._o answer_v in_o these_o word_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o confess_v whether_o you_o understand_v the_o italian_a or_o that_o which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o s._n hierome_n that_o they_o be_v use_v ancient_o in_o the_o church_n a_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o one_o of_o they_o by_o s._n augustine_n prefer_v before_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o other_o high_o commend_v by_o beza_n and_o that_o of_o the_o vulgar_a though_o with_o pagnin_n and_o driedo_n we_o think_v it_o not_o s._n hieromes_n but_o mix_v yet_o we_o can_v be_v content_a to_o say_v as_o isodore_n do_v of_o it_o interpretatio_fw-la eius_fw-la this_o translation_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o hitherto_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n who_o with_o their_o bishop_n dove_n before_o have_v grant_v as_o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n a_o rule_n to_o catholic_n decree_v in_o this_o matter_n if_o we_o may_v give_v credit_n 258._o field_n pag._n 258._o to_o d._n feild_n cite_v and_o allowe_a andradius_fw-la write_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n do_v approve_v translation_n not_o pronownce_v that_o there_o be_v no_o thing_n amiss_o in_o they_o but_o that_o the_o divine_a mystery_n be_v therein_o true_o deliver_v and_o nothing_o that_o concern_v faith_n religion_n or_o good_a manner_n ignorant_o or_o fraudulent_o suppress_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v that_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n shall_v be_v hold_v authentical_a but_o he_o say_v andreas_n vega_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n report_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n mean_v not_o to_o determine_v that_o it_o be_v not_o defective_a or_o faulty_a but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o erroneous_a and_o faulty_a in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o any_o hurtful_a or_o pernicious_a opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n may_v necessary_o be_v deduce_v from_o it_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o meaneninge_n of_o the_o cowncell_n he_o say_v andreas_n vega_n allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o saint_n cross_n afterward_o pope_n who_o deliver_v so_o much_o unto_o he_o hitherto_o d._n field_n allowance_n which_o allow_v that_o his_o protestant_n before_o have_n testify_v as_o much_o for_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v and_o consequent_o as_o much_o as_o catholic_n do_v hold_v in_o this_o question_n further_o i_o argue_v thus_o that_o translation_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v use_v 1300_o year_n age_n when_o the_o church_n be_v in_o her_o best_a and_o flourish_a estate_n and_o from_o which_o no_o hurtful_a or_o pernicious_a opinion_n can_v be_v deduce_v be_v to_o be_v allow_v and_o prefer_v but_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a be_v such_o therefore_o to_o be_v thus_o allow_v and_o prefer_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a and_o before_o grant_v and_o 29._o covell_a def_n of_o hook_n pag._n 29._o d._n covell_n say_v god_n have_v so_o link_v his_o word_n and_o his_o church_n that_o neither_o can_v stand_v where_o both_o be_v not_o the_o minor_a be_v also_o before_o prove_v by_o these_o doctor_n their_o bishop_n dove_n d._n covell_n and_o field_n so_o nothing_o remain_v to_o be_v prove_v in_o this_o argument_n and_o so_o it_o be_v prove_v and_o allow_v by_o these_o protestant_n that_o of_o all_o translation_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v that_o it_o contain_v nothing_o against_o faith_n religion_n or_o good_a manner_n nothing_o that_o be_v erroneous_a which_o suffice_v for_o my_o purpose_n now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o these_o protestant_n can_v justify_v their_o translation_n from_o such_o defect_n for_o they_o have_v grant_v before_o that_o this_o vulgar_a latin_a use_v and_o allow_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o their_o protestant_a translation_n latin_a english_a welsh_a dutch_a french_a or_o whatsoever_o name_v translation_n i_o argue_v thus_o no_o translation_n whatsoever_o be_v authentical_a but_o every_o english_a and_o other_o protestant_a translation_n be_v a_o translation_n therefore_o none_o of_o they_o be_v authentical_a the_o mayor_n proposition_n consist_v of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o d._n covell_n 16._o covell_a ag_n burg._n pag._n 94._o dove_n persuas_fw-la pag._n 16._o which_o be_v these_o no_o translation_n whatsoever_o be_v authentical_a scripture_n d._n dove_n write_v thus_o all_o translation_n have_v many_o fault_n the_o minor_a be_v manifest_o true_a for_o a_o translation_n can_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v no_o translation_n for_o so_o contradictory_n may_v be_v true_a which_o be_v unpossible_a further_o thus_o i_o argue_v no_o translation_n which_o be_v not_o well_o translate_v but_o require_v new_a translation_n be_v to_o be_v allow_v but_o all_o english_a translation_n be_v such_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v allow_v the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o thing_n not_o well_o do_v be_v ill_o do_v because_o non_fw-la datur_fw-la actus_fw-la indifferens_fw-la in_o individuo_fw-la no_o act_n singularize_v be_v indifferent_a therefore_o be_v ill_o be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o king_n speech_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o 46._o confer_v pag._n 46._o hampton_n where_o he_o say_v that_o he_o can_v never_o yet_o see_v a_o bible_n well_o translate_v into_o english_a but_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o he_o think_v the_o geneva_n to_o be_v and_o therefore_o a_o new_a translation_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o our_o english_a nation_n and_o so_o d._n covell_n also_o burg._n covell_a ag_n burg._n wish_v again_o thus_o i_o argue_v no_o translation_n that_o be_v perver_v in_o many_o hundred_o of_o place_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o turk_n koran_n and_o deny_v christianity_n be_v to_o be_v allow_v but_o the_o english_a protestant_a common_a translation_n it_o such_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v allow_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v more_o than_o evident_o true_a the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v by_o the_o protestant_a author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v advertisement_n 1604._o aduertism_n in_o a_o 1604._o his_o word_n be_v these_o the_o bible_n be_v pervert_v in_o eight_o hundred_o and_o eight_o and_o forty_o place_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o english_a protestant_a bible_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o ●urkes_v koran_n and_o so_o christianity_n be_v deny_v in_o england_n by_o public_a authority_n my_o next_o argument_n be_v this_o no_o translation_n that_o have_v many_o omission_n many_o addition_n which_o sometime_o pervert_v the_o sense_n be_v senseless_a and_o sometime_o contrary_a be_v a_o true_a translation_n or_o to_o be_v allow_v but_o the_o english_a receive_v protestant_a translation_n be_v such_o therefore_o not_o true_a nor_o to_o be_v allow_v the_o mayor_n be_v palpable_o true_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o mr._n burges_n in_o these_o word_n answ_n burg._n apol_n pag._n 93._o in_o d._n covells_n answ_n of_o the_o approve_a english_a translation_n it_o be_v a_o translation_n which_o have_v many_o omission_n many_o addition_n which_o sometime_o obscure_v sometime_o pervert_v the_o sense_n be_v sometime_o senseless_a sometime_o contrary_a thus_o i_o argue_v again_o no_o translation_n that_o be_v corrupt_a have_v gross_a corruption_n by_o leave_v out_o of_o word_n by_o put_v to_o of_o word_n and_o which_o pervert_v the_o meaneinge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o true_a or_o sufferable_a translation_n but_o the_o usual_a english_a translation_n by_o protestant_n be_v such_o therefore_o not_o true_a nor_o sufferable_a the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v apparent_o true_a and_o the_o minor_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n the_o 22_o
of_o 52._o d._n g●orge_n abbot_n sup_v pag._n 48._o &_o 52._o constance_n before_o by_o he_o and_o other_o general_a do_v define_v wickliff_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n also_o pope_n john_n the_o 23_o in_o a_o general_a council_n at_o rome_n do_v condemn_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n then_o by_o this_o grant_n the_o protestancie_n of_o england_n be_v the_o same_o as_o these_o protestant_n tell_v we_o which_o be_v teach_v be_v john_n wickliff_n and_o by_o these_o counsel_n general_a by_o their_o own_o assertion_n condemn_v for_o heresy_n must_v needs_o be_v heresy_n and_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a otherwise_o no_o doctrine_n ever_o at_o any_o time_n be_v or_o can_v be_v hereafter_o lawful_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n or_o iuridical_o approve_v and_o allow_v for_o true_a and_o catholic_a for_o by_o their_o own_o censure_n the_o high_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n general_a counsel_n have_v thus_o define_v and_o by_o their_o doctrine_n before_o of_o the_o power_n of_o general_a counsel_n bownde_v all_o christian_n under_o penalty_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n so_o to_o believe_v in_o these_o question_n and_o although_o the_o general_a counsel_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n be_v assemble_v about_o other_o heresy_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o these_o point_n now_o impugn_a by_o protestant_n then_o general_o receive_v and_o not_o doubt_v of_o as_o will_v manifest_o appear_v in_o the_o chapter_n of_o holy_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n yet_o because_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n be_v by_o name_n receive_v and_o authorize_v by_o parliament_n both_o by_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o our_o 102._o statut._n 1_o eliz._n &_o 1_o jacob_n etc._n etc._n sutcliffe_n ag_n d._n kell_n pag._n 102._o present_a sovereign_n and_o d._n sutcliffe_n for_o protestant_n have_v answer_v thus_o before_o we_o hold_v all_o the_o christian_a faith_n explain_v in_o the_o six_o general_a counsel_n then_o see_v the_o first_o six_o have_v get_v this_o great_a papal_a approbation_n first_o concern_v the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a all_o though_o vitus_n and_o vincentius_n be_v precedent_n there_o for_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n yet_o it_o be_v further_o confirm_v by_o that_o apostolic_a council_n conc._n rom._n tom_n 1._o council_n see_v in_o these_o word_n whatsoever_o be_v constitute_v in_o nyce_n of_o bithynia_n to_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n by_o 318_o priest_n we_o confirm_v with_o our_o mouth_n we_o anathematise_v all_o they_o that_o shall_v dare_v to_o dissolve_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o great_a council_n gather_v together_o at_o nyce_n the_o three_o canon_n of_o that_o holy_a council_n 3._o conc._n 1._o nicen_n can_v 3._o define_v thus_o omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la interdixit_fw-la sancta_fw-la synodus_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a council_n have_v whole_o forbid_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a neither_o for_o bishop_n priest_n nor_o sozom._n protest_v book_n of_o make_v and_o order_n bish._n priest_n etc._n etc._n a_o 3._o edw._n 6._o 1._o el._n &_o 1_o jacob_n &_o can_v jacob_n can_v 7._o can_n 8._o socr._n 1._o c._n 8._o sozom._n deacon_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v with_o he_o any_o strange_a woman_n except_o perhaps_o mother_n or_o sister_n or_o grandmother_n etc._n etc._n where_o there_o be_v more_o order_n of_o the_o clergy_n than_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n only_o allow_v with_o they_o and_o none_o of_o these_o to_o have_v any_o other_o woman_n or_o wife_n but_o to_o live_v in_o chastity_n their_o answer_n that_o paphnutius_fw-la persuade_v the_o council_n that_o wife_n marry_v before_o order_n may_v be_v keep_v out_o of_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n be_v direct_o against_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n trull_n l._n 1._o c._n 22._o epip_n in_o compend_v basil_n epist_n 17._o in_o addit_fw-la hier._n in_o vigilant_a epist_n 50._o ad_fw-la pammach_n cone_fw-it carthag_n 2._o can_n 2._o council_n 6._o generca_fw-la 2._o in_o trull_n before_o cite_v against_o s._n epiphanius_n that_o glorious_a saint_n and_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n s._n basile_n also_o s._n hierome_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o carthaginian_a council_n confirm_v in_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n allow_v by_o d._n sutcliffe_n define_v thus_o apostoli_fw-la docuerunt_fw-la &_o ipsa_fw-la seruavit_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o antiquity_n itself_o observe_v that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o those_o that_o handle_v sacrament_n shall_v be_v keeper_n of_o chastity_n and_o abstain_v from_o wife_n and_o yet_o these_o protestant_n utter_o deny_v the_o opinion_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la himself_o as_o they_o themselves_o cite_v he_o for_o they_o marry_v after_o order_n which_o they_o confess_v both_o paphnutius_fw-la and_o the_o first_o nicen_n council_n deny_v to_o be_v lawful_a together_o with_o socrates_n sozomenus_n and_o all_o greek_a authority_n and_o practice_n in_o the_o fourtenth_fw-mi canon_n of_o that_o first_o general_a council_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o mass_n and_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v teach_v in_o these_o 14._o council_n nicen_n 1._o can_v 14._o word_n this_o neither_o the_o rule_n nor_o custom_n have_v deliver_v that_o they_o which_o have_v not_o power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n shall_v give_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o they_o that_o offer_v it_o up_o the_o sixth_o canon_n deliver_v by_o their_o 6._o council_n 1._o nicen._n can_v 6._o own_o interpretation_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o all_o other_o in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o whole_a 5._o john_n speed_v in_o theatr._n pag._n ●06_n council_n sardicen_n can_v 3._o 4._o 7._o etc._n etc._n theodoret._n l_o 2._o hist_o c._n 8_o hiss_v trip_v l._n 4._o c._n 24._o 2d_o 15._o 16._o conc._n constantinopol_n 2._o gener_fw-la can_v 2._o can._n 5._o christian_a world_n as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o great_a sardican_n council_n general_a and_o otherwise_o bind_v this_o kingdom_n by_o our_o bishop_n presence_n and_o assent_v there_o by_o our_o protestant_a theatre_n where_o appeal_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o any_o bishop_n or_o counsel_n themselves_o and_o the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n make_v manifest_a that_o the_o nicen_n council_n prescribe_v no_o limit_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o other_o patriarch_n and_o plain_o deciar_v episcopuin_fw-la romanum_fw-la habere_fw-la primatum_fw-la that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v supreme_a and_o by_o deny_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n they_o prove_v the_o pope_n supreamacie_n from_o the_o begin_v for_o socrates_n 9_o socrates_n in_o histor_n tripart_fw-fr lib._n 4._o cap._n 9_o write_v how_o the_o antiochian_a council_n keep_v within_o twenty_o year_n of_o that_o of_o nyce_n be_v reject_v because_o not_o approve_v by_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n write_v thus_o cum_fw-la utique_fw-la regula_n e●clesiastica_fw-la iubeat_fw-la non_fw-la oportere_fw-la praeter_fw-la sententiam_fw-la romani_fw-la pontifi●is_fw-la con_fw-la ilia_fw-la celebrare_fw-la the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n command_v that_o counsel_n be_v not_o call_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n therefore_o their_o bishop_n bilson_n write_v thus_o the_o canon_n sup_n bilson_n true_a diff_n pag._n 67_o pag._n 66._o sup_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n forbid_v any_o council_n to_o be_v call_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o consent_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n make_v every_o thing_n void_a that_o be_v do_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o the_o protestant_n do_n in_o england_n where_o his_o authority_n 431._o nicephor_n calix_n histecel_v in_o council_n ephes_n prosper_v in_o chron._n an._n 431._o be_v so_o despise_a in_o the_o three_o general_a council_n at_o ephesus_n the_o then_o pope_n of_o rome_n celestical_a constitute_v cyrillus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v precedent_n for_o he_o in_o the_o four_o general_a council_n at_o caleedon_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o pope_n supreamacie_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o d._n downame_n deni_v not_o but_o it_o attribute_v 8._o downam_n l._n 1._o antichrist_n c._n 3._o pag._n 36._o council_n chalcedon_n sess_v 8._o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o council_n in_o the_o 8._o session_n be_v thus_o register_v omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la clamaverunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o the_o bishop_n cry_v out_o next_o unto_o god_n leo_n than_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v judge_v and_o the_o pope_n himself_o not_o be_v present_a in_o that_o council_n his_o legate_n give_v sentence_n against_o dioscorus_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v these_o et_fw-la cum_fw-la 3._o council_n calce_v act._n 1._o 2._o
by_o match_v with_o his_o scister_n and_o present_v he_o with_o rich_a and_o rare_a present_n for_o hugh_n king_n of_o france_n beside_o other_o inestimable_a juell_n send_v he_o the_o sword_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a in_o the_o hilt_n whereof_o all_o cover_v with_o gold_n be_v one_o of_o the_o nail_n that_o fasten_v christ_n to_o the_o cross_n and_o of_o the_o spear_n and_o crown_n of_o thorn_n before_o he_o they_o make_v king_n elfred_n the_o most_o worthy_a and_o after_o he_o king_n edward_n a_o saint_n and_o yet_o make_v they_o both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o merit_n and_o meritorious_a work_n to_o be_v renown_v of_o the_o first_o they_o 351._o pag._n 351._o write_v in_o this_o manner_n elfred_n the_o four_o son_n of_o king_n ethelwolfe_n and_o lady_n osburge_n his_o wife_n a_o child_n of_o fyve_o year_n old_a be_v send_v very_o honourable_o attend_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n where_o leo_n then_o bishop_n confirm_v he_o be_v his_o godfather_n at_o confirmation_n and_o anoint_a he_o to_o the_o expectation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n grow_v in_o year_n he_o grow_v so_o in_o discretion_n magnanimity_n and_o favour_n of_o all_o man_n that_o in_o the_o successive_a reign_v of_o his_o three_o elder_a brethren_n he_o rule_v as_o a_o viceroy_n or_o secondary_a king_n under_o every_o of_o they_o and_o 357._o pag._n 357._o after_o they_o at_o the_o last_o succeed_v in_o the_o english_a monarchye_n he_o be_v a_o most_o worthy_a prince_n gurmund_n or_o gurthurne_n the_o danish_a king_n with_o thirty_o of_o his_o chief_a nobility_n come_v to_o condition_n with_o king_n elfred_n and_o be_v christen_v his_o building_n be_v many_o both_o to_o god_n service_n and_o other_o public_a use_n as_o at_o 359._o pag._n 359._o edelingsey_n a_o monastery_n at_o winchester_n a_o new_a minster_n and_o at_o shastesbury_n a_o house_n of_o nun_n wherein_o he_o make_v his_o daughter_n ethelgeda_n the_o abbess_n his_o other_o holy_a work_n and_o meritorious_a deed_n be_v to_o many_o to_o be_v remember_v in_o this_o place_n but_o they_o conclude_v of_o he_o in_o these_o word_n the_o 28._o pag._n 359._o sup_n n._n 25._o 28._o virtue_n of_o this_o prince_n be_v matchable_a to_o any_o that_o ever_o reign_v before_o he_o and_o exceed_v the_o most_o that_o ever_o reign_v after_o he_o both_o in_o service_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n concern_v k_o edward_n syrname_v the_o confessor_n it_o will_v be_v to_o tedious_a to_o make_v recital_n but_o of_o part_n of_o his_o holy_a virtue_n and_o meritorious_a work_n in_o this_o place_n i_o only_o add_v from_o these_o man_n the_o 40000._o pound_n yearly_a of_o dane_n guilt_n be_v remit_v by_o he_o pay_v for_o 40._o year_n continuance_n 402._o pag._n 397._o 398._o 399._o 400._o 401._o 402._o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o all_o except_o only_o the_o cleargye_n because_o say_v our_o ancient_a law_n the_o king_n repose_v more_o confidence_n in_o the_o prayer_n of_o holy_a church_n then_o in_o the_o power_n of_o arm_n his_o word_n of_o q._n editha_n his_o wife_n open_o upon_o his_o death_n bed_n be_v ●hee_o be_v his_o wife_n but_o in_o secret_a embraceing_n as_o his_o scister_n k._n edward_n and_o his_o successor_n after_o miraculous_o cure_v the_o disease_n call_v struma_n now_o the_o king_n evil_a with_o other_o prophetical_a and_o heavenly_a joust_n he_o be_v endow_v he_o vow_v a_o pilgrimadge_n to_o jerusalem_n for_o dischardg_v whereof_o he_o build_v the_o church_n of_o westminister_n etc._n etc._n these_o protestant_n conclusion_n of_o he_o be_v this_o kiuge_a edward_n a_o prince_n of_o much_o virtue_n and_o integrity_n of_o life_n reign_v with_o such_o justice_n and_o piety_n that_o he_o obtain_v the_o venerable_a name_n of_o saint_n and_o unto_o posterity_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o edward_n by_o the_o adjunct_n confessor_n o_o how_o happy_a be_v it_o if_o either_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n can_v true_o write_v so_o much_o of_o protestant_a prince_n neither_o friend_n to_o the_o doctrine_n or_o favoure_n of_o exercise_n of_o merit_n and_o meritorious_a deed_n therefore_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n by_o their_o own_o doctor_n be_v oversee_v to_o say_v we_o hold_v charity_n to_o be_v no_o concurringe_a cause_n of_o justification_n with_o faith_n yet_o somewhat_o more_o of_o this_o matter_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chapter_n v._o wherein_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o english_a protestant_n that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v possible_a to_o be_v keep_v by_o grace_n may_v and_o aught_o so_o to_o be_v keep_v concern_v the_o keep_n of_o 11._o council_n try_v sess_v 6._o can_n 11._o god_n commandment_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v thus_o define_v no_o man_n ought_v to_o use_v that_o temerarious_a say_n and_o condemn_v by_o the_o father_n under_o anathema_n that_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n be_v unpossible_a to_o be_v keep_v of_o a_o man_n justify_v for_o god_n do_v not_o command_v unpossible_a thing_n but_o command_v do_v admonish_v both_o to_o do_v what_o thou_o can_v and_o to_o ask_v what_o thou_o can_v not_o do_v and_o do_v help_v that_o thou_o may_v be_v able_a to_o do_v who_o commandment_n be_v not_o heavy_a who_o yoke_n be_v sweet_a and_o burden_n light_n for_o they_o which_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v love_n and_o they_o which_o love_v he_o as_o himself_o wittness_v keep_v his_o sayeing_n hitherto_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o that_o the_o english_a protestant_n by_o their_o own_o writing_n be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n in_o this_o question_n thus_o i_o argue_v whatsoever_o all_o christian_n juste_o vow_v to_o keep_v and_o perform_v that_o in_o all_o true_a doctrine_n they_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v and_o perform_v but_o by_o the_o opinion_n of_o english_a protestant_n all_o christian_n vow_v to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n therefore_o they_o may_v and_o must_v keep_v they_o the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_a by_o protestant_n graunte_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n that_o just_a vow_n be_v both_o of_o thing_n possible_a and_o must_v be_v keep_v for_o if_o the_o just_a promise_n of_o man_n to_o man_n bind_v how_o much_o more_o a_o just_a promise_n to_o god_n which_o be_v a_o vow_n obligatory_a and_o bynde_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o public_a protestant_a english_a communion_n book_n reconfirm_v by_o his_o majesty_n authority_n which_o both_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v bownde_v to_o friend_n communion_n book_n tit_n chatechisme_n and_o tit_v public_a baptism_n §._o well_o belove_a friend_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v vow_n to_o do_v it_o then_o see_v all_o english_a protestant_n do_v either_o swear_v or_o subscribe_v unto_o and_o daily_o follow_v and_o execute_v the_o doctrine_n and_o prescription_n of_o that_o their_o authentical_a ritual_a and_o directory_n as_o they_o can_v by_o their_o oath_n or_o subscription_n deny_v it_o without_o perjury_n or_o denial_n of_o their_o faith_n so_o by_o the_o rule_n itself_o they_o commit_v sacrilege_n in_o reject_v that_o doctrine_n second_o i_o argue_v thus_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o be_v observe_v or_o keep_v of_o man_n in_o religion_n be_v possible_a but_o the_o commandment_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o be_v observe_v and_o keep_v therefore_o they_o be_v possible_a the_o mayor_n be_v so_o evident_o true_a that_o if_o it_o be_v false_a all_o christian_n of_o necessity_n must_v be_v damn_v and_o none_o save_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o which_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v do_v or_o else_o not_o be_v save_v but_o damn_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o present_a protestant_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o d._n field_n allow_v greek_a church_n which_o censure_v thus_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o necessity_n be_v 5._o hieremias_n patriarch_n constant_a censur_fw-fr cap._n 5._o to_o be_v observe_v therefore_o if_o they_o will_v deny_v their_o communion_n book_n itself_o which_o before_o have_v prove_v the_o same_o for_o vow_n just_o make_v be_v of_o necessity_n to_o be_v keep_v yet_o if_o d._n feild_n and_o such_o will_v be_v member_n of_o their_o allow_a true_a church_n they_o must_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n &_o i_o the_o rather_o hope_v so_o because_o d._n feild_n with_o other_o say_v out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n three_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v 1._o feild_n sup_v paert_v 1._o cap._n 1._o so_o absurd_a that_o by_o protestant_n opinion_n no_o man_n teach_v it_o be_v not_o true_a but_o this_o of_o the_o unpossibilitie_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_a the_o minor_a be_v make_v as_o manifest_v by_o these_o word_n of_o d._n sutcliff_n 91._o sutcliff_n ag_n d._n kellison_n
the_o mayor_n or_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a otherwise_o god_n have_v bownde_v man_n to_o follow_v and_o embrace_v heresy_n or_o error_n of_o necessity_n he_o must_v be_v damn_v without_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n except_o heresy_n false_a opinion_n error_n or_o infidelity_n can_v bring_v to_o heaven_n which_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n true_a religion_n which_o by_o no_o possibility_n can_v either_o be_v untrue_a or_o uncertain_a be_v revel_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o against_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n itself_o that_o man_n under_o penalty_n of_o damnation_n shall_v be_v tie_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o that_o sentence_n for_o obedience_n whereof_o they_o be_v likewise_o assure_v to_o be_v damn_v which_o be_v to_o accuse_v god_n most_o merciful_a of_o the_o great_a tyranny_n the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n be_v prove_v and_o the_o first_o also_o in_o this_o word_n of_o d._n feild_n church_n d._n feild_n epist_n dedicat_fw-la before_o hi●_n book_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n more_o necessary_a in_o this_o day_n of_o so_o many_o intricate_a controversy_n of_o religion_n then_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o that_o housthold_a of_o faith_n that_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o see_v they_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n hitherto_o the_o word_n of_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n by_o which_o be_v evident_o conclude_v the_o most_o certain_a truth_n of_o those_o two_o proposition_n in_o the_o argument_n before_o but_o to_o avoid_v all_o frivolous_a objection_n and_o distinction_n of_o these_o man_n concern_v the_o church_n general_a particular_a triumphant_a militant_a etc._n etc._n he_o plain_o affirm_v that_o this_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a judge_n be_v the_o present_a militant_a church_n in_o time_n of_o controversy_n as_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o this_o his_o word_n which_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o etc._n etc._n where_o his_o word_n society_n of_o man_n and_o in_o the_o world_n be_v manifest_a testimony_n that_o he_o assign_v the_o present_a militant_a church_n on_o earth_n and_o no_o other_o to_o have_v this_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a authority_n and_o judgement_n to_o decide_v controversy_n which_o be_v alsoe_o prove_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o protestant_a citation_n in_o this_o chapter_n hereafter_o and_o if_o their_o word_n be_v not_o so_o clear_a that_o they_o can_v be_v wrest_v otherwise_o yet_o the_o question_n itself_o do_v make_v it_o manifest_a for_o all_o the_o faithful_a people_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o be_v now_o in_o many_o thousand_o decease_a out_o of_o this_o life_n can_v now_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o cowncell_n to_o give_v sentence_n and_o much_o less_o can_v they_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v be_v so_o gather_v together_o to_o pronounce_v judgement_n and_o yet_o all_o this_o belong_v unto_o and_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n further_o this_o be_v convince_v by_o his_o cite_a word_n that_o household_n of_o faith_n which_o can_v be_v possible_o mean_v but_o only_o of_o the_o militant_a church_n for_o in_o the_o triumphant_a church_n see_v god_n in_o himself_o and_o true_o and_o perfect_o knoweinge_v without_o belief_n all_o sacred_a mystery_n faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v evacuate_v in_o they_o and_o turn_v into_o knowledge_n and_o as_o for_o those_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v though_o hereafter_o in_o their_o time_n ordain_v they_o at_o true_o to_o believe_v yet_o now_o they_o neither_o have_v faith_n nor_o knowledge_n of_o any_o thing_n nor_o any_o other_o quality_n or_o any_o be_v at_o all_o three_o this_o be_v evident_a also_o in_o his_o last_o word_n embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n which_o protestant_n will_v not_o and_o can_v mean_v of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n and_o by_o no_o possibility_n can_v either_o be_v understand_v or_o verify_v of_o the_o true_a believer_n to_o come_v hereafter_o and_o not_o yet_o produce_v into_o this_o life_n for_o this_o as_o yet_o have_v no_o essence_n or_o be_v for_o themselves_o can_v have_v no_o communion_n give_v no_o direction_n nor_o pronounce_v judgement_n for_o we_o now_o extant_a to_o embrace_v and_o follow_v and_o this_o be_v invincible_o further_a prove_v in_o the_o argument_n followeinge_v therefore_o seconde_o i_o argue_v thus_o that_o which_o have_v authority_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o define_v what_o be_v true_a and_o good_a to_o over-rule_v all_o inferior_a and_o particular_a judgement_n and_o bind_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v and_o embrace_v the_o definition_n thereof_o must_v needs_o be_v of_o infallible_a judgement_n and_o have_v the_o supreme_a and_o high_a power_n to_o command_v and_o no_o man_n to_o disobey_v it_o but_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o have_v infallible_a judgement_n the_o high_a power_n on_o earth_n and_o may_v not_o be_v disobey_v but_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v obey_v by_o all_o people_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o authority_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v by_o all_o subject_n otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o authority_n and_o there_o be_v none_o to_o command_v non_fw-la to_o be_v obedient_a and_o definition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o must_v be_v most_o certain_a undoubted_a and_o infallible_a as_o every_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v and_o of_o necessity_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o they_o be_v as_o firm_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o profess_v except_o we_o will_v be_v heretic_n and_o obstinate_o incur_v damnation_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o d._n covell_n who_o write_v of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o 30._o covell_n def_n of_o hook_n pag._n 30._o word_n that_o whi●h_n by_o her_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n she_o shall_v probable_o think_v and_o define_v to_o be_v true_a or_o good_a must_v in_o congruity_n of_o reason_n over_o rule_n all_o other_o inferior_a judgement_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o they_o that_o out_o of_o a_o singularity_n of_o their_o own_o ask_v we_o why_o we_o thus_o hang_v our_o judgement_n on_o the_o church_n sleeve_n we_o answer_v with_o s●lonion_a too_o be_v better_a than_o one_o for_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n it_o be_v never_o think_v safe_a to_o neglect_v the_o judgement_n of_o many_o and_o rash_o to_o follow_v the_o fancy_n and_o opinion_n of_o some_o few_o hitherto_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n direct_o proveinge_v the_o second_o proposition_n for_o which_o he_o be_v cite_v which_o also_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o argument_n follow_v three_o i_o argue_v thus_o whatsoever_o have_v authority_n from_o christ_n to_o approve_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o special_a ground_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n to_o publish_v and_o command_v to_o her_o child_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v the_o hige_a judge_n and_o of_o infallible_a judgement_n but_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o high_a judge_n and_o infallible_a in_o judgement_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o prove_v and_o confess_v before_o and_o of_o all_o man_n can_v be_v except_v against_o by_o protestant_n common_o attribute_v the_o high_a and_o consequent_o infallible_a judgement_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o if_o they_o have_v their_o allowance_n and_o infallibility_n so_o much_o as_o belong_v unto_o we_o and_o our_o knowledge_n from_o the_o authority_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n so_o give_v they_o allowance_n and_o warrant_v of_o infallibility_n must_v needs_o be_v as_o much_o or_o more_o infallible_a at_o jest_n concern_v we_o in_o which_o manner_n we_o dispute_v accordeinge_v to_o that_o rule_n of_o logic_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la unumquodque_fw-la tale_n &_o illud_fw-la magis_fw-la that_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o any_o thing_n be_v so_o be_v rather_o so_o itself_o which_o be_v evident_a thus_o in_o this_o case_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n so_o much_o as_o appertain_v to_o our_o knowledge_n have_v not_o approbation_n and_o infallibility_n of_o truth_n but_o at_o they_o at_o approve_a and_o publish_v for_o such_o by_o the_o church_n this_o church_n which_o so_o give_v they_o such_o allowance_n and_o warrant_v of_o infallibility_n must_v needs_o likewise_o be_v infallible_a which_o though_o it_o need_v not_o confirmation_n be_v justify_v by_o a_o maxim_n in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n may_v yet_o for_o protestant_n be_v further_o make_v manifest_a by_o the_o protestant_a author_n of_o the_o assertion_n who_o to_o prove_v the_o ministry_n of_o
note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o speak_v in_o d._n covells_n word_n add_v discipline_n the_o third_o note_n and_o of_o as_o much_o necessity_n although_o 56._o covell_n against_o the_o plea_n of_o the_o innocent_a pag._n 21._o 56._o for_o his_o own_o opinion_n he_o affirm_v with_o their_o recite_v article_n in_o this_o manner_n there_o be_v but_o two_o essential_a note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o true_a preache_v of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o relator_n have_v tell_v 48._o relat._n 6._o 48._o protestant_n before_o that_o this_o note_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o to_o use_v his_o word_n protestant_n join_v with_o it_o shall_v find_v excellent_a order_n of_o government_n singular_a help_n for_o increase_v of_o godliness_n for_o the_o conquer_a of_o sin_n for_o the_o profiteinge_n of_o in_o virtue_n and_o their_o b._n 29._o dove_n persuas_fw-la pag._n 29._o dove_n speakeinge_v of_o the_o late_a cowncell_n of_o trent_n have_v these_o word_n in_o that_o cowncell_n of_o trent_n they_o set_v forth_o such_o wholesome_a canon_n concern_v discipline_n as_o be_v fit_a for_o a_o reform_a church_n therefore_o by_o these_o protestant_n nothing_o be_v wante_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n neither_o any_o thing_n superfluous_a use_v in_o these_o thing_n further_o i_o argue_v thus_o whatsoever_o church_n be_v not_o heretical_a or_o scismaticall_a be_v true_a and_o orthodox_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v neither_o heretical_a nor_o scismaticall_a therefore_o orthodox_n and_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o as_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o call_v orthodox_n and_o catholic_a so_o the_o impugner_n obstinate_o either_o in_o understandeinge_v denye_v the_o define_v doctrine_n thereof_o or_o in_o will_n resiste_v the_o superiority_n and_o true_a authority_n be_v heretic_n and_o scismatic_o the_o second_o proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o their_o before_o cite_a protestant_a bishop_n dave_v offereinge_v per_n dove_n sup_n per_n catholic_n to_o communicate_v with_o protestant_n without_o any_o change_n of_o opinion_n in_o religion_n and_o yet_o that_o neither_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n be_v to_o be_v communicate_v withal_o he_o have_v before_o wittness_v in_o these_o word_n this_o proposition_n be_v undoubted_o true_a no_o 5._o dove_n sup_v pag._n 5._o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n be_v to_o be_v communicate_v withal_o and_o he_o give_v we_o security_n that_o by_o no_o possibility_n accordeinge_v to_o the_o argument_n of_o general_n cowncell_v before_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v at_o any_o time_n adjudge_v heretical_a his_o word_n be_v these_o no_o church_n can_v be_v condemn_v and_o adjudge_v heretical_a 14._o dou●_n sup_v pag._n 14._o by_o any_o private_a censure_n but_o it_o must_v be_v public_a a_o general_n cowncell_n as_o he_o there_o expownd_v himself_o which_o protestant_n never_o have_v nor_o possible_o can_v hereafter_o have_v as_o they_o have_v grant_v my_o next_o argument_n be_v this_o all_o that_o allow_v the_o present_a greek_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o further_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n consent_v with_o the_o same_o greek_a church_n except_o in_o some_o few_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o also_o hold_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o greek_n be_v in_o error_n must_v needs_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o these_o protestant_a writer_n of_o england_n do_v thus_o therefore_o they_o must_v allow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o the_o comparative_a degree_n in_o all_o thing_n include_v the_o positive_a and_o add_v a_o increase_n unto_o it_o as_o better_a or_o more_o good_a more_o white_a more_o virtuous_a more_o true_a etc._n etc._n do_v include_v goodness_n whiteness_n virtue_n truth_n etc._n etc._n and_o increase_v they_o therefore_o that_o church_n which_o be_v more_o true_a then_o that_o which_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v true_a must_v needs_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n first_o their_o present_a protestant_a etc._n d._n george_n abbot_n against_o d._n kill_v pag._n 63._o feild_n l._n 3._o cap._n 5._o etc._n etc._n archbishop_n of_o conterbury_n and_o d._n feild_n allow_v the_o church_n of_o greece_n for_o true_a the_o title_n of_o d._n feilds_n chapter_n have_v thus_o free_v it_o from_o the_o contrary_a in_o these_o word_n it_o no_o way_n appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n be_v heretical_a or_o in_o damnable_a schism_n and_o again_o all_o these_o holdeinge_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o beleeve_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v on_o the_o peril_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n to_o be_v particular_o and_o express_o know_v and_o believe_v we_o account_v they_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o innumerable_a live_n and_o dye_v in_o they_o be_v and_o have_v be_v save_v now_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o greece_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o chief_a to_o be_v about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whether_o from_o the_o father_n alone_o as_o the_o grecian_n contend_v or_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v and_o whether_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n leven_v or_o unlevened_a bread_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v and_o in_o both_o these_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n consent_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o appeat_v by_o those_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n who_o proocee_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n allow_v and_o use_v by_o they_o in_o the_o one_o and_o their_o practice_n in_o the_o other_o if_o protestant_n will_v add_v contention_n for_o supreamacie_n most_o of_o they_o confess_v that_o it_o never_o belong_v to_o constantionple_n in_o greece_n who_o name_n be_v not_o when_o rome_n enjoy_v it_o and_o the_o present_a grecian_n themselves_n acknowledge_v the_o high_a dignity_n in_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n i_o be_o to_o prove_v the_o supreamacie_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o the_o world_n for_o this_o place_n it_o suffice_v that_o the_o recite_v d._n feild_n tell_v we_o absolute_o it_o be_v 1._o feild_n l._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 1._o but_o intrude_v and_o usurp_v by_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v account_v superior_a great_a more_o honourable_a than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n because_o his_o city_n be_v the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o world_n which_o as_o he_o say_v he_o challenge_v because_o he_o be_v prouse_a and_o insolent_a now_o how_o these_o church_n agree_v in_o other_o question_n that_o be_v between_o protestant_n and_o we_o will_v appear_v in_o diverse_a chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o grecian_n against_o protestant_n 54._o hieremias_n patriarch_n constant_n in_o censura_fw-la etc._n etc._n relation_n of_o relig._n c._n 53._o or_o 54._o and_o as_o in_o plain_a word_n confess_v by_o the_o protestant_n relator_n who_o speak_v of_o they_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o this_o manner_n with_o rome_n they_o concur_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o general_o in_o the_o service_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o prayinge_v to_o saint_n in_o auriculare_fw-la confession_n in_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o these_o without_o any_o or_o with_o no_o material_a difference_n they_o hold_v purgatorij_fw-la 55._o cap._n 55._o also_o and_o worship_v of_o picture_n for_o the_o form_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o much_o resemble_v the_o latin_n their_o liturgy_n he_o the_o same_o that_o in_o the_o old_a 54._o cap._n 53._o or_o 54._o time_n namely_o s._n basils_n s._n chrisostomes_n and_o s._n gregory_n translate_v without_o any_o bendeinge_n of_o they_o to_o that_o change_n of_o languadge_a which_o their_o tongue_n have_v suffer_v in_o sum_n all_o those_o opinion_n which_o grow_v into_o the_o church_n before_o that_o separation_n between_o the_o grecke_n and_o latin_n and_o all_o those_o ceremony_n which_o be_v common_a unto_o both_o they_o still_o retain_v as_o their_o crosseing_n and_o thaper_n with_o other_o therefore_o if_o this_o church_n of_o greece_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v as_o these_o protestant_n teach_v much_o less_o can_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v condemn_v by_o they_o but_o must_v needs_o remain_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n thus_o i_o
exercise_v when_o by_o protestant_n confession_n be_v be_v in_o she_o florishe_v and_o best_a estate_n a_o rule_n to_o all_o anchor_n of_o piety_n chief_a and_o only_a church_n that_o it_o still_o ought_v to_o enjoy_v and_o we_o to_o grant_v unto_o it_o but_o in_o that_o time_n it_o claim_v and_o exercise_v supreamacie_n over_o all_o therefore_o it_o ought_v now_o to_o enjoy_v it_o and_o we_o to_o grant_v it_o the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a for_o that_o which_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o all_o may_v not_o be_v crooked_a neither_o that_o which_o be_v confess_v chief_a be_v make_v inferior_a and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v those_o eminent_a privilege_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n our_o king_n say_v of_o this_o roman_a parlam_n king_n speech_n in_o parlam_n church_n it_o be_v our_o mother_n church_n it_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o all_o both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o ceremony_n when_o it_o be_v in_o her_o florisheinge_n and_o best_a estate_n d._n covell_n write_v thus_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o hook_n covell_a def_n of_o hook_n only_a church_n m_o ●_o ormerod_n call_v it_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o west_n in_o which_o diussion_n england_n be_v and_o 105._o ormerod_n pick_v pap_n pag._n 184._o down_o l._n 2._o antichr_n pag._n 105._o the_o anchor_n of_o piety_n d._n downame_n grant_v it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o good_a christian_a to_o clean_o unto_o the_o roman_a apostolical_a church_n the_o second_o proposition_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n claim_v and_o have_v supreamacie_n in_o that_o unspotted_a and_o primative_a time_n of_o christianity_n be_v also_o prove_v in_o the_o former_a for_o that_o which_o be_v mother_n rule_n to_o all_o both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o ceremony_n chief_a church_n etc._n etc._n must_v needs_o be_v grant_v supreme_a yet_o to_o prove_v it_o further_o d._n sutcliffe_n cite_v s._n 57_o sutcliffe_n subu_fw-fr pag._n 57_o irenaeus_n lyve_v near_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o long_o before_o any_o general_a cowncell_n or_o christian_a emperor_n to_o give_v supreamacie_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n write_v thus_o irenaeus_n say_v that_o every_o church_n ought_v to_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o her_o eminent_a principality_n mr._n ormerod_n ascend_v to_o pope_n s._n anacletus_fw-la lyve_v withein_o one_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n his_o word_n be_v these_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o preeminence_n over_o all_o church_n 78._o ormerod_n pick_v pap_n pag._n 78._o anacletus_fw-la allege_v matth._n 16._o vers_fw-la 18._o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o he_o expownd_v it_o thus_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la romanam_fw-la upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o who_o shall_v we_o think_v be_v better_a acquaint_v with_o the_o privilege_n of_o that_o high_a apostle_n s._n peter_n bishop_n of_o rome_n than_o this_o so_o glorious_a a_o pope_n martyr_n and_o saint_n so_o near_o succeede_v unto_o he_o when_o especial_o these_o protestant_n before_o have_v assure_v we_o that_o this_o supreme_a power_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o s._n peter_n but_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o and_o this_o be_v not_o a_o singular_a opinion_n of_o that_o holy_a pope_n and_o saint_n but_o of_o other_o also_o the_o word_n of_o d._n downame_n be_v 35._o down_o l._n 1._o antichrist_n cap._n 3._o pag._n 35._o these_o diverse_a bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o the_o time_n of_o socrates_n the_o historiam_fw-la in_o her_o that_o best_a and_o flourish_a estate_n contend_v to_o have_v the_o primacy_n over_o all_o other_o church_n and_o that_o be_v the_o chief_a scope_n of_o many_o of_o their_o epistle_n decret_a all_o and_o yet_o in_o that_o time_n the_o protestant_n confess_v those_o pope_n for_o saint_n and_o if_o their_o epistle_n be_v decretall_n and_o law_n to_o the_o church_n as_o this_o doctor_n call_v they_o how_o have_v not_o these_o master_n of_o decree_n and_o lawemaker_n unto_o the_o church_n also_o supreme_a and_o high_a power_n in_o the_o church_n for_o law_n and_o decree_n be_v make_v by_o sovereign_n and_o not_o by_o subject_n and_o not_o only_a pope_n but_o other_o saint_n and_o doctor_n before_o and_o to_o be_v cite_v hereafter_o by_o protestant_n be_v of_o the_o same_o myndc_n for_o this_o time_n it_o shall_v suffice_v that_o m_o ●_o middleton_n 200._o middleton_n papistom_a pag._n 200._o write_v thus_o papias_n lyveinge_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n teach_v peter_n primacy_n and_o romish_a episcopalitye_n my_o next_o argument_n or_o further_a confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a be_v thus_o that_o church_n or_o governor_n that_o in_o the_o best_a and_o flourish_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n by_o protestant_n do_v claim_v exercise_n and_o execute_v supreme_a &_o high_a spiritual_a jurisdiction_n in_o all_o know_a part_n of_o the_o world_n asia_n africa_n and_o europe_n be_v true_o supreme_a and_o so_o still_o to_o be_v account_v but_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v such_o therefore_o supreme_a in_o authorine_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o in_o this_o life_n no_o supreamacie_n can_v extend_v further_o then_o into_o the_o whole_a know_a world_n and_o all_o part_n thereof_o the_o second_o proposition_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n and_o first_o of_o asia_n among_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o privilege_n which_o they_o claim_v d._n covell_n tell_v we_o that_o pope_n 65._o covell_a ag_n thea_fw-mi plea_n of_o the_o inn._n pag._n 65._o victor_n a_o glorious_a saint_n and_o martyr_n do_v in_o that_o best_a time_n authoritative_o take_v upon_o he_o supreamacie_n over_o all_o asia_n excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o it_o his_o word_n be_v inseperate_v all_o asia_n from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o be_v disobedient_a in_o the_o point_n and_o question_n of_o easter_n and_o what_o great_a supreamacie_n can_v be_v name_v in_o the_o church_n then_o to_o excommunicate_v and_o purt_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o see_v such_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o but_o in_o superiority_n this_o supreamacie_n must_v needs_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o of_o all_o church_n of_o the_o world_n even_o by_o the_o grant_n of_o protestant_n the_o greek_a church_n next_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v ever_o most_o contend_v for_o superiotie_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a cowncell_n next_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o privilege_a yet_o here_o they_o be_v by_o a_o saint_n bishop_n of_o rome_n just_o excommunicate_v as_o by_o their_o superior_a for_o as_o these_o protestant_n argue_v in_o a_o other_o place_n par_fw-fr in_fw-la parem_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la a_o equal_a against_o a_o equal_a have_v not_o authority_n and_o doctor_n covell_n before_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v thus_o censure_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o use_v his_o word_n again_o for_o be_v disobedient_a in_o the_o point_n and_o question_n of_o easter_n which_o make_v it_o plain_a in_o his_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v supreme_a and_o have_v high_a power_n not_o only_o to_o censure_v but_o to_o decree_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o bind_v other_o unto_o it_o otherwise_o not_o to_o have_v conform_v themselves_o unto_o he_o have_v not_o be_v in_o these_o greek_a church_n disobedience_n which_o be_v only_o against_o authority_n and_o superiority_n and_o although_o s._n iraeneus_n dislike_v this_o proceede_v with_o the_o asiaticall_a church_n ob._n as_o these_o protestant_n use_v to_o object_v yet_o it_o answ_n be_v only_o because_o he_o think_v there_o be_v not_o such_o severity_n then_o to_o be_v use_v not_o that_o he_o deny_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o do_v it_o for_o of_o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o his_o supreamacie_n d._n sutcliffe_n 57_o sucl_n subu_n pag._n 57_o have_v wittness_v before_o that_o he_o say_v every_o church_n ought_v to_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o her_o eminent_a principality_n therefore_o he_o think_v it_o have_v supreamacie_n for_o principality_n eminent_a over_o every_o church_n here_o mention_v must_v needs_o be_v supreamacie_n over_o all_o for_o every_o church_n be_v subject_v unto_o it_o none_o be_v privilege_v from_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o it_o next_o let_v we_o come_v to_o africa_n for_o which_o m._n perkins_n write_v thus_o appeal_v be_v often_o make_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o those_o 238._o perk._n problem_n pag._n 237._o 238._o day_n of_o her_o best_a estate_n and_o yet_o appeal_v be_v all_o way_n to_o superior_n and_o never_o out_o of_o foreign_a kingdom_n but_o to_o the_o high_a for_o
there_o bound_n there_o be_v three_o principal_a bishop_n or_o patriarch_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n namely_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n after_o which_o time_n constantinople_n before_o name_v byzantium_n make_v great_a by_o constantine_n and_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o bishop_n of_o this_o see_v not_o only_o obtain_v to_o have_v the_o dignity_n of_o a_o patriarche_n among_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n be_v prefer_v before_o both_o the_o other_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o set_v in_o degree_n of_o honour_n next_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hitherto_o chapter_n see_v d._n feild_n l._n 4._o c._n 5._o pag._n 202._o clear_o allowt●e_v pope_n sentence_n to_o be_v great_a next_z to_o a_o general_a council_n it_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n d._n feild_n by_o which_o discourse_n of_o he_o there_o be_v evident_a demonstration_n make_v that_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o give_v he_o by_o general_a counsel_n but_o he_o have_v it_o before_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n the_o first_o general_n second_o that_o it_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a that_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o of_o the_o twoe_o most_o principal_a church_n ●atine_v and_o greek_n to_o use_v his_o word_n the_o latin_a the_o most_o principal_a be_v under_o he_o three_o he_o be_v from_o the_o begin_v prefer_v before_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o constantinople_n in_o so_o much_o that_o for_o constantinople_n clayme_a after_o to_o be_v chief_a he_o call_v it_o a_o pretend_a title_n 62._o feild_n sup_v pag_n 62._o and_o false_a and_o further_o his_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v these_o the_o mognificence_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o city_n daily_o encreaseinge_v he_o challenge_v to_o be_v superior_a and_o will_v be_v name_v universal_a b._n not_o challenge_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v b._n alone_o but_o enchroacheinge_v upon_o the_o right_n of_o all_o other_o and_o thereby_o declareinge_v himself_o great_a and_o more_o honourable_a than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n hitherto_o his_o word_n of_o the_o encreache_v and_o usurpation_n of_o that_o bishop_n then_o by_o his_o sentence_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n still_o be_v chief_a and_o obtain_v by_o right_a the_o primacy_n in_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n and_o this_o cheefnes_n and_o primacy_n as_o d._n covell_n have_v tell_v before_o must_v needs_o be_v supreamacie_n for_o no_o other_o can_v have_v it_o and_o d._n downame_n alsoe_o have_v acknowledge_v 36._o down_o l._n 1._o ant._n pag._n 36._o that_o both_o the_o emperor_n and_o general_a council_n attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a stile_n in_o his_o judgement_n and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v if_o as_o it_o be_v among_o all_o member_n of_o the_o body_n the_o head_n be_v chief_a supreme_a and_o most_o excellent_a let_v we_o add_v to_o this_o twoe_o sentence_n of_o d._n feild_n the_o one_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o tradition_n or_o unwritten_a verity_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v equal_a 238._o field_n pag._n 238._o with_o the_o word_n precept_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v unto_o we_o in_o writeinge_v if_o they_o can_v prove_v any_o such_o unwritten_a verity_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o writeinge_n that_o give_v thing_n their_o authority_n but_o the_o worth_a and_o credit_n of_o he_o that_o deliver_v they_o though_o by_o word_n and_o lyvely_a voice_n only_o and_o after_o delyver_v three_o rule_n 242._o feild_n pag._n 242._o how_o to_o know_v certain_o these_o so_o authorize_v tradition_n and_o unwritten_a verity_n he_o speak_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o three_o rule_n be_v the_o constant_a testimony_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n succeede_o deliver_v to_o which_o some_o add_v the_o present_a testimony_n of_o any_o apostolical_a church_n who_o declyning_n when_o they_o begin_v we_o can_v precise_o tell_v hitherto_o the_o word_n of_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n equal_a to_o scripture_n be_v prove_v by_o this_o his_o rule_n then_o if_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o some_o his_o protestant_n by_o his_o manner_n of_o argueinge_v teache_v that_o the_o present_a testimony_n of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n be_v sufficient_a rule_n to_o prove_v true_a tradition_n of_o so_o high_a authority_n not_o only_o this_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n supreamacie_n and_o command_a power_n but_o all_o other_o doctrine_n teach_v against_o these_o protestant_n of_o necessity_n must_v needs_o be_v true_a by_o this_o rule_n for_o they_o all_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o and_o principal_a apostolic_a church_n must_v needs_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n at_o this_o present_a when_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o it_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o purpose_n for_o so_o that_o some_o protestant_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o request_v and_o do_v not_o desire_v or_o expect_v d._n feilds_n voice_n or_o a_o harmony_n of_o protestant_n never_o yet_o agree_v well_o in_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o to_o urdge_v this_o particular_a question_n in_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n supreamacie_n by_o that_o rule_n of_o tradition_n which_o he_o allow_v which_o be_v the_o constant_a testimony_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n succee_o deliver_v it_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n before_o that_o the_o pastor_n of_o that_o great_a apostolic_a church_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n have_v succee_o claim_v teach_v decree_v exercise_v and_o execute_v that_o high_a power_n of_o supreamacie_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o know_a world_n and_o yet_o for_o further_a proof_n of_o my_o minor_a proposition_n mr._n powell_n write_v of_o these_o holy_a primative_a 231._o powell_n l._n 1._o antichrist_n pag._n 230._o 231._o pope_n followe_a in_o this_o manner_n calixtus_n pope_n define_v that_o all_o bishop_n though_o gather_v in_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v fulfil_v the_o will_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o which_o do_v not_o this_o be_v pronownce_v of_o pope_n pelagius_n to_o keep_v a_o conciliable_a and_o not_o a_o council_n and_o again_o in_o these_o word_n 240._o powell_n sap_n pag._n 240._o pope_n damasus_n write_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o bishopp_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n therefore_o by_o these_o protestant_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n of_o right_n be_v and_o of_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o admit_v for_o the_o supreme_a head_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v thus_o unuincible_o prove_v by_o these_o english_a protestant_n themselves_o our_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o persecutor_n i_o conclude_v with_o their_o own_o word_n grant_v before_o upon_o such_o trial_n and_o conviction_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o 16._o offer_v of_o conference_n pag._n 16._o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o they_o god_n and_o christ_n jesus_n himself_o have_v have_v great_a wrong_n and_o indignity_n offer_v unto_o they_o in_o that_o they_o be_v reject_v and_o that_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v scismaticastin_a forsakeinge_v unity_n and_o communion_n with_o they_o which_o d._n feild_n must_v alsoe_o justify_v affirminge_v as_o 202._o feild_n l._n 4._o c._n 5._o pag._n 202._o shall_v be_v cite_v at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a in_o this_o world_n and_o as_o great_a disobedience_n to_o resist_v or_o deny_v it_o which_o be_v evident_a alsoe_o before_o but_o more_o of_o it_o hereafter_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o new_a protestant_n history_n itself_o malicious_o by_o their_o bishop_n publish_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o entreate_v of_o the_o conversion_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n they_o set_v down_o this_o marginal_a supposition_n in_o these_o 5._o theatre_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o great_a brittany_n pag._n 203._o cap._n 9_o n._n 5._o word_n saint_n peter_n the_o apostle_n suppose_v to_o have_v preach_v in_o britain_n and_o further_o write_v as_o follow_v to_o which_o uncontrollable_a testimony_n some_o other_o have_v add_v that_o saint_n peter_n the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o word_n of_o life_n in_o this_o island_n as_o to_o other_o gentiles_n he_o do_v for_o who_o god_n have_v
chapter_n four_o wherein_o by_o these_o protestant_n be_v prove_v that_o all_o book_n of_o scripture_n receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v canonical_a that_o the_o protestant_n also_o have_v either_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o or_o uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a and_o no_o true_a canon_n of_o they_o thus_o haveinge_v demonstrative_o prove_v by_o these_o our_o english_a protestant_n that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o that_o byndeinge_n and_o command_v authority_n power_n and_o privilege_n that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n remission_n of_o sin_n or_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n out_o of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v the_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o household_n of_o faith_n spouse_n of_o christ_n pillar_n and_o grawnd_v of_o truth_n her_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v direction_n follow_v judgement_n rest_v in_o to_o over-rule_v all_o inferior_a judgement_n whatsoever_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o both_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o so_o excellent_a and_o enfraunchised_a society_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n thereof_o supreme_a head_n and_o spiritual_a governor_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n all_o other_o question_n against_o these_o protestant_n be_v all_o ready_a determine_v by_o they_o for_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o nothing_o be_v further_a needful_a to_o be_v dispute_v in_o this_o business_n either_o of_o scripture_n or_o any_o other_o matter_n in_o controversy_n yet_o for_o particular_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o in_o all_o particular_n i_o will_v proceed_v and_o first_o for_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o argue_v these_o first_o in_o general_n whatsoever_o book_n be_v propose_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o supreme_a governor_n thereof_o to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n be_v for_o such_o to_o be_v embrace_v and_o reverence_v but_o all_o book_n allow_v for_o canonical_a by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o present_a be_v such_o therefore_o so_o to_o be_v embrace_v and_o reverence_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_a before_o by_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o true_a church_n recite_v in_o general_a and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o in_o particular_a also_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o approveinge_v and_o proposeinge_v holy_a scripture_n for_o mr._n wotton_n have_v thus_o testify_v for_o 442._o wotton_n ●ef_n of_o perk_n pag._n 442._o protestant_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o discreditinge_v that_o we_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o very_a special_a ground_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o scripture_n and_o d._n covell_n have_v these_o convince_a 60._o covell_n against_o burg._n pag._n 60._o word_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n accorde_v to_o her_o authority_n receive_v from_o he_o have_v warrant_n to_o approve_v the_o scripture_n to_o acknowledge_v to_o receive_v to_o publish_v and_o command_v unto_o her_o child_n and_o to_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o this_o privilege_n by_o these_o protestant_n can_v be_v attribute_v or_o ascribe_v to_o any_o other_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v before_o confess_v that_o never_o any_o other_o church_n but_o that_o only_a exceptinge_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n pretend_v title_n much_o less_o enjoy_v it_o to_o this_o supreamacie_n to_o propownde_v scripture_n or_o make_v decree_n and_o law_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o child_n thereof_o and_o the_o claim_n thereof_o in_o that_o behalf_n be_v but_o pretend_v and_o usurp_a and_o now_o be_v by_o their_o desolation_n leave_v desolate_a and_o to_o make_v this_o the_o next_o argument_n and_o other_o more_o clear_a i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n recite_v the_o word_n of_o d._n feild_n wherein_o to_o omit_v the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o they_o in_o no_o place_n tell_v we_o which_o be_v or_o be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o we_o be_v as_o these_o protestant_n before_o have_v tell_v we_o and_o shall_v more_o particulare_o testify_v hereafter_o in_o this_o chapter_n to_o receive_v they_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v know_v who_o most_o to_o trust_v and_o obey_v in_o this_o and_o such_o matter_n of_o controversy_n he_o write_v thus_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n before_o hither_o 5._o field_n pag._n 202._o l._n 4._o c._n 5._o we_o may_v refer_v those_o different_a degree_n of_o obedience_n which_o we_o must_v yield_v to_o they_o that_o command_v and_o teach_v we_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n excellent_o describe_v and_o set_v down_o by_o waldensis_n we_o 27._o waldens_n doct_v fidei_fw-la l._n 2._o art_n 2._o 3._o p._n 27._o must_v say_v he_o reverence_n and_o respect_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o catholic_a doctor_n who_o doctrynes_n and_o writeing_n the_o church_n allow_v we_o must_v more_o regard_v the_o authority_n of_o catholic_a bishop_n more_o than_o these_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n among_o they_o more_o especial_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o a_o general_a council_n more_o than_o all_o these_o hitherto_o d._n field_n allowance_n that_o this_o sentence_n be_v excellent_a therefore_o soeinge_v protestant_n never_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v as_o they_o have_v testify_v before_o any_o general_a council_n and_o deny_v all_o counsel_n to_o be_v general_a which_o catholic_n allege_v for_o this_o question_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o also_o they_o be_v bownde_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o that_o sentence_n next_o unto_o they_o which_o d._n feild_n here_o have_v tell_v we_o to_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v define_v and_o allow_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n for_o the_o book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o alsoe_o other_o question_n as_o all_o protestant_n acknowledge_v otherwise_o they_o be_v in_o one_o of_o high_a degree_n of_o disobedience_n that_o be_v in_o this_o world_n as_o his_o word_n before_o be_v witness_v for_o he_o allow_v it_o for_o a_o excellent_a direction_n for_o this_o present_a time_n and_o state_n of_o controversy_n and_o yet_o if_o he_o will_v contend_v which_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v be_v allow_v for_o this_o present_a time_n to_o draw_v it_o to_o the_o day_n of_o thomas_n waldensis_n dispute_v against_o witcliffe_n their_o brother_n in_o religion_n as_o they_o write_v and_o resist_v the_o pope_n authority_n it_o make_v nothing_o for_o his_o excuse_n for_o if_o witcliffe_n as_o they_o say_v be_v of_o their_o religion_n the_o case_n between_o waldensis_n and_o he_o be_v the_o same_o which_o now_o be_v with_o myself_o and_o other_o catholic_n write_n against_o these_o protestant_n brethren_n and_o associate_n in_o religion_n unto_o wickliff_n and_o his_o adherent_n this_o suppose_a i_o make_v the_o like_a argument_n again_o in_o this_o manner_n whatsoever_o book_n be_v propose_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o high_a rule_n that_o can_v be_v have_v or_o find_v in_o time_n of_o controversy_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o holy_a scripture_n but_o all_o those_o book_n which_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n allow_v be_v so_o propose_v therefore_o to_o be_v receive_v for_o holy_a scripture_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a otherwise_o all_o christian_n in_o such_o time_n must_v needs_o be_v perplex_v in_o the_o chief_a matter_n of_o religion_n by_o protestant_n the_o scripture_n themselves_o which_o can_v be_v for_o so_o contradictory_n may_v both_o be_v true_a the_o high_a rule_n aught_o to_o be_v follow_v the_o high_a rule_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v which_o be_v contradictory_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v follow_v because_o it_o be_v our_o rule_n and_o the_o best_a that_o can_v be_v assign_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v because_o it_o be_v false_a and_o deceatefull_a and_o no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o bownde_v under_o damnation_n to_o follow_v a_o false_a rule_n and_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v further_o confirm_v by_o these_o protestant_a sentence_n d._n covell_n word_n be_v 31._o covell_a def_n of_o hook_n pag._n 31._o these_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v no_o bad_a opinion_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v holy_a and_o divine_a in_o themselves_o but_o so_o esteem_v by_o we_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a we_o have_v it_o from_o the_o church_n and_o further_a thus_o the_o church_n have_v four_o 33._o covell_a sup_n pag._n 32._o 33._o singular_a office_n towards_o the_o scripture_n first_o to_o be_v of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v a_o faithful_a register_n second_o to_o discern_v and_o judge_n between_o false_a and_o adulterate_a and_o that_o which_o be_v true_a and_o perfect_a the_o three_o to_o publish_v and_o diwlge_v to_o proclaim_v as_o a_o crier_n the_o true_a edict_n
of_o our_o lord_n himself_o the_o last_o be_v to_o be_v a_o interpreter_n and_o in_o that_o followe_a the_o safe_a rule_n to_o make_v a_o undivided_a unity_n of_o the_o truth_n uncapable_a of_o contradiction_n to_o be_v a_o most_o faithful_a 34._o covell_a sup_n pag._n 34._o expositor_n of_o his_o own_o meaneinge_n and_o he_o conclude_v thus_o w●e_o say_v that_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n we_o see_v her_o judgement_n we_o hear_v her_o voice_n and_o in_o humility_n subscribe_v unto_o all_o this_o therefore_o be_v so_o prove_v before_o by_o these_o protestant_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n endow_v with_o these_o privilege_n concern_v scripture_n that_o the_o sentence_n of_o it_o by_o d._n feild_n before_o be_v more_o 202._o feild_n l_o 4._o c._n 5._o pag._n 202._o to_o be_v regard_v then_o any_o they_o have_v or_o can_v pretend_v and_o have_v propose_v all_o book_n for_o scripture_n which_o catholic_n receive_v we_o must_v obey_v it_o and_o the_o rather_o agree_v with_o the_o greek_a church_n of_o which_o d._n feild_n write_v 5._o feild_n pag._n 71._o l._n 3._o c._n 5._o thus_o we_o account_v they_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o that_o church_n can_v be_v which_o propose_v adulterate_a and_o false_a scripture_n for_o true_a and_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v also_o evident_o true_a that_o all_o book_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n receave_v for_o holy_a scripture_n as_o so_o propose_v publish_v and_o prove_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o sentence_n which_o in_o this_o time_n be_v high_a and_o to_o be_v obey_v as_o these_o protestant_n have_v write_v and_o so_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o argument_n be_v evident_o confess_v for_o true_a by_o our_o adversary_n before_o my_o next_o argument_n i_o will_v cite_v the_o opinion_n of_o d._n dove_n protestant_n bishop_n of_o peterboroughe_n in_o this_o matter_n that_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v where_o upon_o protestant_n denye_v so_o many_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o catholic_n receive_v be_v ground_v his_o word_n be_v these_o catholic_n 15._o dove_n persuas_fw-la pag._n 15._o prove_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a out_o of_o s._n augustine_n we_o that_o they_o be_v apochrypha_n out_o of_o s._n hierome_n both_o which_o doctor_n be_v of_o no_o small_a authority_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o we_o differ_v no_o more_o from_o they_o than_o s._n hierome_n do_v from_o s._n augustine_n this_o suppose_a i_o argue_v thus_o from_o these_o protestant_n whatsoever_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n by_o a_o bishop_n saint_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n far_o the_o most_o learned_a doctor_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o likelihood_n except_v the_o apostle_n and_o this_o so_o constant_o that_o this_o so_o worthy_a a_o man_n teach_v it_o to_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o probability_n be_v more_o like_a to_o be_v true_a then_o that_o which_o doubteful_o teach_v by_o a_o other_o doctor_n of_o the_o same_o time_n who_o both_o as_o the_o same_o protestant_n write_v deal_v unchristiane_o and_o his_o authority_n in_o some_o other_o question_n be_v not_o much_o worth_a and_o in_o this_o also_o recall_v his_o opinion_n or_o renownce_v it_o to_o be_v his_o meanening_n but_o the_o doctrine_n which_o catholic_n hold_v concern_v canonical_a scripture_n be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_o thus_o much_o more_o likely_a to_o be_v true_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v than_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n therefore_o by_o protestant_n it_o be_v more_o probable_a credible_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n in_o the_o proceed_n of_o these_o protestant_n by_o who_o i_o dispute_v in_o this_o place_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o among_o man_n learn_v in_o profession_n the_o common_a maxim_n and_o reason_n be_v we_o must_v believe_v every_o one_o most_o cunning_a in_o his_o art_n and_o among_o man_n learned_a he_o that_o be_v most_o or_o more_o learned_a be_v to_o be_v credit_v before_o he_o that_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v his_o inferior_a in_o learning_n and_o doctrine_n constant_o teach_v not_o only_o to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o such_o a_o more_o or_o most_o learned_a father_n and_o doctor_n and_o saint_n but_o further_o to_o be_v doctrine_n general_o of_o christ_n true_a church_n be_v of_o more_o credit_n and_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v then_o that_o which_o by_o a_o man_n suppose_v not_o so_o learned_a be_v either_o doubtful_o or_o singular_o teach_v or_o uncertain_a whether_o it_o be_v so_o teach_v or_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o be_v recant_v disclaim_v or_o retract_v by_o himself_o the_o second_o proposition_n concern_v these_o two_o great_a doctor_n and_o their_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n d._n cou●ll_o write_v of_o s._n augustine_n in_o 3._o covell_n against_o burges_n pag._n 3._o these_o term_n he_o be_v far_o the_o most_o learned_a doctor_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o likelihood_n except_o the_o apostle_n and_o give_v the_o high_a commendation_n he_o can_v to_o s._n thomas_n aquin●s_n our_o holy_a and_o learned_a schole-man_n he_o burg._n covell_a ag_n burg._n write_v thus_o by_o a_o common_a proverb_n it_o be_v speak_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o s._n augustine_n dwell_v in_o aquinas_n concern_v s._n hi●●ome_n upon_o who_o imagine_a opinion_n in_o this_o point_n they_o will_v hazard_v their_o whole_a religion_n in_o their_o judgement_n allowe_a only_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v judge_n and_o ground_n in_o other_o point_n they_o use_v he_o in_o these_o term_n mr._n wottons_n 520._o wotton_n def_n of_o perk_n 495._o 500_o 519._o 520._o word_n be_v hieromes_n authority_n in_o the_o case_n of_o single_a life_n be_v not_o much_o worth_a hierome_n condemninge_v jovinian_a deal_v unchristiane_o with_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o hierome_n concludeinge_v a_o work_n of_o perfection_n from_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n go_v and_o sell_v all_o etc._n etc._n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v now_o let_v we_o hear_v from_o these_o protestant_n in_o what_o manner_n these_o two_o doctor_n teach_v as_o this_o protestant_n tell_v we_o these_o two_o diverse_a doctrine_n one_o for_o catholic_n and_o the_o other_o for_o protestant_n d._n feild_n writeinge_v of_o book_n which_o catholic_n admit_v for_o canonical_a and_o the_o protestant_n refuse_v tell_v we_o that_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o three_o council_n 246._o field_n pag._n 248._o l._n 4._o c._n 23._o &_o pag._n 246._o of_o carthage_n confirm_v in_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n wherein_o augustine_n be_v present_a and_o innocentius_n pope_n lyve_v in_o that_o time_n seem_v to_o add_v they_o to_o the_o canon_n then_o it_o seem_v by_o this_o protestant_a testimony_n that_o s._n augustine_n opinion_n approve_v in_o so_o great_a a_o provincial_a council_n confirm_v in_o a_o general_a council_n the_o high_a commaundeinge_v judgement_n by_o they_o before_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o great_a apostolic_a see_n the_o second_o judge_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n before_o in_o d._n feilds_n allowance_n especial_o in_o that_o best_a time_n when_o his_o majesty_n say_v it_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o all_o and_o constant_o teach_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o the_o great_a doctor_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o be_v like_a to_o be_v by_o these_o man_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v credit_v and_o believe_v and_o by_o their_o doctrine_n before_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v disobedient_a both_o in_o the_o second_o and_o first_o degree_n also_o be_v bownde_v to_o embrace_v and_o follow_v it_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o these_o protestant_n will_v testify_v of_o s._n hierome_n for_o their_o opinion_n in_o this_o question_n of_o these_o book_n the_o protestant_a conference_n at_o hampton_n court_n before_o 60._o conference_n pag._n 60._o the_o king_n entreate_v of_o protestant_n exception_n against_o these_o scripture_n use_v these_o word_n most_o of_o the_o objection_n make_v against_o those_o book_n be_v the_o old_a cavil_n of_o the_o jew_n renew_v by_o s._n hi●rome_n in_o his_o time_n who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o give_v they_o that_o name_n of_o apochrypha_n which_o opinion_n upon_o ruffinus_n his_o challenge_v he_o after_o a_o sort_n disclaim_v the_o rather_o because_o a_o general_a offence_n be_v take_v at_o his_o speech_n in_o that_o kind_a hitherto_o the_o censure_n at_o that_o public_a protestant_a conference_n by_o which_o the_o protestant_n ground_n for_o denial_n of_o those_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o tearminge_v
they_o apochypha_n be_v utter_o overthowne_v for_o a_o opinion_n found_v upon_o old_a jewish_a cavil_n against_o christian_n singular_o hold_v or_o renew_v reclaim_v by_o the_o author_n and_o general_o gi●●ing_v offence_n as_o these_o protestant_n affirm_v this_o be_v be_v not_o probable_a to_o be_v true_a d._n covell_a against_o burges_n the_o puritan_n answer_v the_o objection_n against_o these_o 91._o covell_a ag_n burges_n pag._n 8●_n 86._o 87._o 88_o 89_o 90._o 91._o book_n as_o catholic_n do_v and_o show_v that_o these_o book_n have_v without_o cause_n be_v accuse_v of_o fault_n by_o protestant_n only_o to_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a as_o catholic_n esteem_v they_o and_o further_o he_o add_v thus_o they_o be_v most_o true_a and_o may_v have_v the_o reconcilement_n 87._o covell_a sup_n pag._n 87._o of_o other_o scripture_n and_o again_o in_o these_o word_n if_o russinus_n be_v not_o deceive_v they_o be_v approve_v as_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o apostle_n for_o when_o s._n hierome_n write_v so_o scornful_o of_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n and_o the_o song_n of_o the_o three_o child_n he_o charge_v he_o therein_o to_o have_v rob_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o divine_a instrument_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n and_o s._n hierome_n who_o be_v not_o usual_o slow_a to_o defend_v himself_o leave_v that_o point_n unanswear_v pretend_v that_o what_o he_o have_v speak_v be_v not_o his_o own_o opinion_n but_o what_o the_o jew_n object_v and_o for_o his_o pain_n in_o translate_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n which_o protestant_n deny_v he_o give_v this_o reason_n because_o we_o read_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nyce_n do_v reckon_v it_o in_o the_o number_n of_o holy_a scripture_n hitherto_o d._n covell_n word_n and_o much_o like_a unto_o this_o of_o russinus_n he_o cit_v from_o s._n augustine_n s._n cyprian_n and_o other_o temporibus_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la proximis_fw-la in_o the_o next_o age_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o weak_a that_o protestant_a religion_n be_v that_o by_o their_o own_o testimony_n be_v found_v upon_o so_o singular_a new_a reviue_v jewish_a cavil_n disclaim_v and_o general_o offensyve_a and_o dislike_v opinion_n from_o hence_o i_o argue_v further_o all_o book_n which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o divine_a instrument_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v most_o true_a and_o may_v have_v reconcilement_n of_o other_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v allow_v for_o such_o but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v verify_v of_o book_n which_o these_o protestant_n deny_v and_o by_o themselves_o as_o be_v cite_v from_o they_o before_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n both_o proposition_n be_v grant_v by_o these_o protestant_n before_o and_o so_o in_o this_o argument_n nothing_o remain_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o again_o thus_o i_o argue_v whatsoever_o a_o general_a council_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n the_o high_a rule_n by_o protestant_n before_o to_o approve_v scripture_n and_o bind_v all_o man_n unto_o the_o definition_n of_o it_o receive_v for_o scripture_n aught_o to_o be_v receive_v for_o such_o but_o more_o book_n than_o protestant_n allow_v be_v so_o receive_v as_o these_o protestant_n tell_v we_o therefore_o more_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v both_o proposition_n be_v here_o also_o grant_v before_o by_o protestant_n and_o so_o the_o argument_n conclude_v true_o against_o they_o further_o i_o argue_v thus_o those_o book_n which_o the_o jew_n before_o and_o at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n for_o their_o great_a or_o great_a part_n dwelle_v out_o of_o jury_n use_v as_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o deliver_v as_o a_o canon_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o be_v join_v in_o one_o volume_n read_v by_o they_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n than_o the_o acknowledge_v true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o three_o carthaginian_a council_n which_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n be_v now_o to_o be_v receive_v and_o allow_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o those_o book_n which_o protestant_n deny_v and_o catholic_n allow_v be_v such_o therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v now_o allow_v for_o canonical_a the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o if_o the_o jew_n before_o and_o at_o the_o comme_a of_o christ_n the_o primative_a christian_n of_o that_o time_n and_o their_o practice_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o most_o principal_a church_n before_o by_o d._n feild_n and_o other_o protestant_n a_o fomous_a provincial_a council_n and_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o direct_v and_o instruct_v we_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v for_o instruction_n in_o this_o case_n these_o be_v by_o these_o protestant_n before_o the_o great_a warrant_n and_o rule_v we_o can_v have_v in_o such_o cause_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v prove_v in_o this_o manen_n d._n feild_n have_v speak_v how_o the_o hebrew_n jew_n have_v make_v their_o hebrew_n canon_n accorde_v to_o their_o jewish_a reckon_v of_o the_o number_n of_o their_o letter_n how_o probable_o i_o leave_v to_o hebritian_n and_o may_v not_o now_o entreat_v he_o conclude_v thus_o these_o only_o do_v 245._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o pag._n 245._o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n receive_v as_o divine_a and_o canonical_a neither_o much_o marvel_n all_o the_o other_o be_v the_o last_o that_o be_v write_v and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o decaye_a state_n and_o affliction_n of_o these_o he_o write_v thus_o in_o the_o next_o word_n that_o other_o book_n be_v add_v unto_o sup_v feild_n sup_v these_o who_o authority_n not_o be_v certain_a and_o know_v be_v call_v apocryphal_a fall_v out_o on_o this_o sortè_fw-la the_o jew_n in_o their_o late_a time_n before_o and_o at_o the_o locum_fw-la act._n 6._o c._n gloss_n ordinar_fw-mi &_o lyr_n in_o eandem_fw-la locum_fw-la come_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o proper_o and_o for_o distinction_n sake_n name_v hebr●es_n commorant_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a land_n other_o name_v hellenist_n that_o be_v jew_n of_o dispersion_n mingle_v with_o the_o grecian_n these_o have_v write_v sundry_a book_n in_o greek_a which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o together_o with_o other_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o they_o have_v of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n but_o the_o hebrews_n receive_v only_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o book_n before_o mention_v hence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o jew_n deliver_v a_o double_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o jew_n proselyte_n and_o all_o our_o of_o jury_n do_v add_v these_o book_n with_o the_o other_o for_o scripture_n use_v they_o as_o part_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n deliver_v they_o to_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o part_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o primative_a church_n consequent_o so_o receive_v they_o otherwise_o they_o be_v not_o thus_o deliver_v therefore_o thus_o far_o the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v prove_v for_o i_o do_v not_o expect_v d._n feild_n to_o say_v or_o not_o say_v express_o that_o these_o be_v or_o be_v not_o canonical_a but_o what_o in_o true_a consequence_n he_o must_v say_v by_o his_o own_o grant_n before_o and_o hereafter_o then_o he_o tell_v we_o they_o in_o s._n augustine_n time_n be_v receive_v 246._o field_n pag._n 246._o by_o he_o the_o father_n of_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o innocentius_n then_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o best_a estate_n of_o that_o church_n when_o it_o be_v as_o before_o by_o protestant_n sup_v king_n speech_n sup_v a_o rule_n unto_o all_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n now_o that_o the_o canon_n of_o this_o carthaginian_a council_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o trallo_n to_o use_v his_o word_n and_o which_o protestant_n acknowledge_v 258._o field_n l._n 4._o cap._n 23._o pag._n 258._o for_o a_o general_a council_n their_o high_a rule_n he_o testify_v after_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n neither_o be_v his_o exception_n because_o the_o laodicean_n council_n which_o name_v not_o all_o ob._n they_o be_v there_o also_o confirm_v of_o any_o purpose_n answ_n for_o that_o general_a council_n by_o protestant_n approve_v and_o confirminge_v both_o that_o which_o name_v they_o for_o canonical_a and_o that_o do_v not_o name_v they_o all_o must_v needs_o confirm_v they_o for_o canonical_a otherwise_o against_o supposition_n this_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v not_o be_v confirm_v as_o they_o teach_v it_o be_v further_o i_o
authority_n in_o such_o case_n be_v private_a therefore_o no_o protestant_a interpretation_n be_v bind_v or_o juridical_a the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o d._n feild_n 235._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 19_o pag._n 235._o in_o these_o word_n we_o confess_v that_o neither_o conference_n of_o place_n nor_o consideration_n of_o the_o antecedentia_fw-la and_o consequentia_fw-la nor_o look_v into_o the_o original_n be_v of_o any_o force_n unless_o we_o find_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o mean_v in_o the_o place_n interpret_v to_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o write_v thus_o again_o private_a interpretation_n 226._o field_n pag._n 226._o be_v not_o so_o propose_v and_o urge_v as_o if_o they_o will_v bind_v all_o other_o to_o receive_v it_o the_o minor_a proposition_n that_o all_o protestant_a exposition_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o binde_v and_o juridical_a power_n be_v private_a be_v thus_o prove_v by_o this_o protestant_a argument_n no_o interpretation_n or_o interpreter_n wante_v jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n to_o command_v their_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v beleve_v as_o such_o be_v to_o be_v account_v bynde_v and_o juridical_a but_o all_o english_a protestant_n interpretation_n exposition_n and_o definition_n by_o their_o own_o judgement_n want_v this_o binde_v and_o commaunde_v authority_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o juridical_a and_o byndeinge_v to_o be_v believe_v the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o where_o there_o be_v not_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o thing_n those_o thing_n can_v be_v right_o and_o iuridical_o command_v or_o binde_v man_n to_o do_v or_o believe_v they_o the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o d._n feild_n in_o these_o word_n as_o before_o we_o make_v 228._o field_n pag._n 228._o three_o kind_n of_o judgement_n the_o one_o of_o discretion_n common_a to_o all_o the_o other_o of_o direction_n common_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o three_o of_o jurisdiction_n proper_a to_o they_o that_o have_v supreme_a power_n in_o the_o church_n so_o likewise_o we_o make_v three_o kind_n of_o interpretation_n the_o first_o private_a the_o second_o of_o public_a direction_n and_o so_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n may_v public_o propose_v what_o they_o conceive_v of_o it_o and_o the_o three_o of_o jurisdiction_n and_o so_o they_o that_o have_v supreme_a power_n that_o be_v in_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v interpreate_v the_o scripture_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n suppress_v all_o they_o that_o shall_v gaynesay_v such_o interpretation_n and_o subject_a every_o man_n that_o shall_v disobey_v such_o determination_n as_o they_o consent_v upon_o to_o excommunication_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n hitherto_o d._n field_n word_n plain_o declare_v that_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o protestant_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v this_o juridical_a and_o commaunde_v judgement_n or_o interpretation_n because_o as_o be_v prove_v by_o themselves_o before_o they_o neither_o have_v have_v nor_o can_v have_v any_o general_a council_n in_o which_o alone_o he_o place_v this_o jurisdiction_n and_o binde_v power_n for_o propose_v without_o authority_n which_o he_o give_v there_o to_o bishop_n be_v not_o juridical_a and_o coactive_a if_o he_o shall_v answer_n that_o in_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v no_o general_a council_n and_o yet_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v decide_v and_o embrace_v he_o condemn_v himself_o and_o all_o protestant_n in_o this_o business_n for_o either_o he_o must_v leave_v that_o primative_a church_n absolute_o without_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n which_o be_v most_o absurd_a or_o leave_v it_o to_o they_o that_o both_o true_o claim_v and_o use_v it_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o these_o protestant_n have_v before_o acknowledge_v and_o above_o all_o man_n d._n feild_n must_v be_v of_o that_o opinion_n for_o he_o 202._o feild_n pag._n 202._o have_v write_v and_o allow_v in_o this_o manner_n we_o must_v reverence_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o catholic_a doctor_n who_o doctrine_n and_o writeing_n the_o church_n allow_v we_o must_v more_o regard_v the_o authority_n of_o catholic_a bishop_n more_o than_o these_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n among_o they_o more_o especial_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o a_o general_a council_n more_o than_o all_o these_o therefore_o by_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n in_o time_n when_o general_a counsel_n can_v be_v the_o high_a decide_n and_o juridical_a sentence_n and_o power_n be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o this_o he_o be_v also_o prevent_v from_o say_v that_o protestant_n may_v command_v such_o interpretation_n and_o definition_n within_o their_o own_o temporal_a territory_n for_o so_o they_o shall_v not_o most_o reverence_n and_o respect_n next_o to_o a_o general_a council_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o next_o judge_n as_o he_o have_v write_v but_o quite_o the_o contrary_a their_o own_o stubborn_a and_o disobedient_a will_n which_o in_o such_o cause_n be_v heretical_a or_o sc●maticall_a usurpation_n and_o yet_o d._n feild_n in_o his_o division_n of_o interpretation_n before_o assign_v no_o jurisdiction_n at_o all_o to_o inferior_a bishop_n to_o command_v either_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o in_o provincial_n in_o such_o case_n further_o i_o argue_v thus_o no_o opinion_n or_o article_n not_o ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o command_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o all_o protestant_n deduction_n and_o interpretation_n in_o these_o controversy_n be_v such_o not_o ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v believe_v or_o command_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o mayor_n be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v both_o before_o when_o protestant_n have_v deprive_v themselves_o of_o counsel_n pope_n and_o all_o true_a proposer_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n tie_v themselves_o to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o deduction_n and_o be_v thus_o further_o confirm_v by_o d._n covell_n in_o these_o word_n 85._o covell_a def_n of_o hook_n pag._n 85._o doctrine_n derive_v exhortation_n deduct_v interpretation_n agreeable_a be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o whole_a religion_n of_o protestant_n against_o catholic_n be_v thus_o found_v upon_o so_o deceatefull_a a_o ground_n as_o humanee_n deduction_n be_v can_v true_o and_o juridical_o be_v commander_n yet_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_a to_o all_o that_o their_o religion_n consist_v whole_o on_o their_o imagine_a interpretation_n and_o deduction_n that_o mr._n wotton_n and_o etc._n wotto●_n def_n of_o perk._n pag._n 467._o etc._n etc._n other_o be_v enforce_v absurde_o to_o say_v that_o deduction_n from_o scripture_n make_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n otherwise_o he_o cannot_v make_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v in_o their_o doctrine_n against_o us._n and_o d._n feild_n himself_o so_o resolute_a before_o against_o these_o private_a interpretation_n and_o exposition_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n to_o defend_v their_o religion_n in_o make_v such_o deduction_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n by_o every_o private_a deduction_n his_o word_n be_v these_o we_o 226._o feild_n pag_n 226._o say_v that_o man_n not_o neglect_v that_o light_n of_o direction_n which_o the_o church_n yield_v no●_n other_o help_n and_o mean_n may_v be_v assure_v out_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o the_o conference_n of_o place_n the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n and_o the_o suitable_a correspondence_n that_o one_o part_n of_o dyvine_a truth_n have_v with_o a_o other_o that_o they_o have_v sound_n out_o the_o true_a meaneinge_n of_o it_o and_o by_o this_o assurednes_n he_o seem_v to_o understand_v assurednes_n of_o faith_n make_v their_o private_a deduction_n and_o interpretation_n the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o m._n wotton_n before_o cite_v do_v in_o 467._o wotton_n def_n of_o perk._n pag._n 467._o these_o word_n we_o acknowledge_v both_o and_o hold_v all_o matter_n conclude_v logical_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o if_o they_o be_v express_o set_v down_o in_o it_o word_n for_o word_n therefore_o i_o may_v lawful_o take_v it_o be_v a_o common_a protestant_a doctrine_n both_o doctor_n feild_n and_o m._n wotton_n speakeinge_v for_o their_o protestant_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n we_o say_v we_o acknowledge_v etc._n etc._n so_o that_o by_o their_o religion_n m._n field_n or_o m._n wottons_n logic_n vain_a and_o uncertain_a deduction_n be_v of_o high_a authority_n and_o more_o to_o be_v believe_v than_o any_o general_a council_n or_o 21._o articl_n of_o relig._n art_n 21._o other_o external_a rule_n of_o religion_n for_o all_o these_o by_o they_o as_o be_v present_o to_o be_v prove_v may_v err_v even_o in_o
faith_n or_o be_v think_v requisite_a or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n now_o to_o prove_v my_o second_o proposition_n d._n feild_n will_v testify_v that_o both_o these_o scripture_n and_o the_o right_a order_n of_o deduction_n from_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o tradition_n only_o his_o ●ordes_n be_v these_o much_o contention_n there_o have_v 20._o field_n l._n 4._o pag._n 238._o cap._n 20._o be_v about_o tradition_n some_o urge_v the_o necessity_n of_o they_o and_o other_o reject_v they_o for_o the_o cleare_v whereof_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o we_o reject_v not_o all_o for_o first_o we_o receive_v the_o number_n and_o name_n of_o the_o author_n of_o book_n divine_a and_o canonical_a as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n this_o tradition_n we_o admit_v the_o number_n author_n and_o integrity_n of_o the_o part_n of_o these_o b●oke●_n we_o receive_v as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n thus_o much_o for_o the_o scripture_n that_o their_o number_n author_n part_n and_o every_o chapter_n verse_n and_o sentence_n be_v by_o tradition_n then_o their_o pretend_a deduction_n from_o thence_o must_v needs_o be_v such_o for_o in_o every_o theological_a syllogism_n they_o must_v needs_o take_v either_o the_o one_o or_o both_o proposition_n from_o this_o grant_v tradition_n and_o their_o conclusion_n must_v much_o rather_o be_v tradition_n as_o also_o the_o manner_n of_o deduce_v for_o they_o grant_v they_o be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n and_o to_o decide_v this_o d._n feild_n wittness_v again_o in_o this_o order_n the_o 239._o feild_n sup_v pag._n 238._o 239._o second_o kind_n of_o tradition_n which_o we_o admit_v be_v that_o summarie_a comprehension_n of_o the_o chief_a head_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o her_o faith_n the_o orderly_a connexion_n and_o distinct_a explication_n as_o these_o principal_a article_n gather_v into_o a_o epitome_n i●_n right_o name_v a_o tradition_n and_o howsoever_o he_o will_v contend_v that_o the_o article_n be_v in_o scripture_n or_o may_v thence_o be_v deduce_v in_o which_o his_o fellow_n in_o religion_n hereafter_o will_v give_v he_o denial_n for_o christ_n discende_v into_o hell_n communion_n of_o saint_n and_o other_o yet_o he_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v compose_v by_o they_o and_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o her_o faith_n before_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o he_o will_v say_v it_o be_v contain_v be_v write_v be_v absolute_o a_o tradition_n and_o yet_o he_o make_v it_o so_o absolute_a a_o thing_n that_o to_o use_v his_o word_n in_o it_o be_v employ_v and_o whence_o be_v infer_v all_o conclusion_n theological_a but_o that_o the_o 20._o feild_n supr_fw-la cap._n 20._o true_a explication_n also_o of_o scripture_n be_v a_o tradition_n he_o wittness_v in_o these_o word_n the_o three_o be_v that_o form_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o explication_n 239._o field_n pag._n 239._o of_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o which_o the_o first_o christian_n receavinge_v of_o the_o same_o aposile_n that_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n commend_v to_o posterity_n this_o may_v right_o be_v name_v a_o tradition_n for_o that_o we_o need_v a_o plain_n and_o distinct_a explication_n of_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v somewhat_o obscure_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o see_v these_o deduction_n from_o scripture_n be_v not_o without_o tradition_n and_o thing_n obscure_o contain_v may_v not_o be_v receive_v as_o article_n of_o religion_n by_o they_o without_o a_o plain_n and_o distinct_a explication_n by_o tradition_n and_o the_o plain_a thing_n of_o scripture_n by_o they_o before_o as_o also_o that_o epitome_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v tradition_n it_o be_v manifest_o prove_v that_o all_o article_n and_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v by_o tradition_n by_o these_o their_o writeing_n further_o i_o argue_v thus_o whatsoever_o doctrine_n be_v of_o that_o necessity_n that_o the_o denial_n feild_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o obstinate_o be_v heresy_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o by_o these_o protestant_n there_o be_v such_o doctrine_n only_o by_o tradition_n therefore_o some_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v believe_v only_o by_o tradition_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a yet_o further_o confirm_v by_o these_o protestant_n d._n covell_v 2._o covell_a exam_n pag_n 202._o orme_a dial_n 2._o word_n be_v these_o heretic_n be_v neither_o simple_a infidel_n nor_o idolater_n but_o obstinate_o err_a in_o some_o fundamental_a point_n m._n ormerod_n write_v thus_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n which_o so_o swerve_v from_o the_o wholesome_a doctrine_n as_o contemn_v the_o judgement_n both_o of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n persi_v in_o his_o opinion_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o heresy_n be_v not_o without_o denial_n of_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n wherein_o both_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n be_v contemn_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o d._n feild_n in_o this_o manner_n where_o first_o to_o use_v his_o word_n he_o allow_v for_o a_o clear_a instance_n not_o to_o be_v prove_v by_o 240._o field_n pag._n 240._o scripture_n the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o mary_n and_o after_o confess_v that_o hiluedius_n for_o pertinatiouse_o denial_n thereof_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n in_o that_o he_o say_v this_o be_v no_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o a_o 20._o feild_n sup_v cap._n 20._o seemly_a truth_n deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n fit_v the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o so_o sanctify_a a_o vessel_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n as_o her_o body_n be_v he_o speak_v true_o in_o allow_v it_o for_o a_o tradition_n but_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v any_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o yet_o tell_v we_o that_o heluidius_fw-la for_o denial_n of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n he_o both_o contradict_v himself_o the_o truth_n and_o his_o fellow_n protestant_n before_o assure_v that_o heretic_n be_v they_o that_o obstinate_o err_v in_o fundamental_a point_n as_o d._n covell_n write_v or_o as_o m._n ormerod_n note_v swerve_v from_o the_o wholesome_a doctrine_n as_o contenininge_v the_o judgement_n both_o of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v deny_v in_o everye_o heresy_n and_o also_o that_o thing_n deliver_v only_o by_o tradition_n as_o d._n feild_n acknowledge_v the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n to_o be_v be_v the_o word_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n further_n these_o protestant_n seem_v to_o condemn_v the_o anabaptist_n and_o denier_n of_o the_o necessity_n to_o baptise_v infant_n yet_o d._n feild_n write_v thus_o 239._o field_n pag._n 239._o the_o foarth_n kind_n of_o tradition_n be_v the_o continue_a practice_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o neither_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n express_o nor_o the_o example_n of_o such_o practice_n express_o there_o deliver_v of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n which_o be_v therefore_o name_v a_o tradition_n because_o it_o be_v not_o express_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v baptize_v infant_n nor_o any_o express_a precept_n there_o find_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o and_o his_o word_n of_o the_o plural_a signification_n the_o four_o kind_n of_o tradition_n such_o thing_n of_o this_o sor●e●_n etc._n etc._n be_v sufficient_a argument_n that_o he_o allow_v diverse_a other_o tradition_n of_o this_o nature_n that_o which_o he_o add_v we_o find_v the_o scripture_n to_o delyver_v the_o ground_n of_o it_o be_v express_o 85._o field_n pag._n 228._o covell_a def_n of_o hook_n pag._n 85._o against_o himself_o before_o and_o d._n covell_n thus_o assure_v we_o in_o these_o word_n doctrine_n derive_v exhortation_n deduct_v interpretation●_n agreeable_a be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o d._n feild_n 226._o feild_n supr_fw-la pag._n 226._o private_a interpretation_n be_v not_o so_o propose_v and_o urge_v as_o if_o they_o will_v bind_v all_o other_o to_o receive_v it_o yet_o all_o man_n be_v bownde_v to_o receive_v and_o firm_o believe_v article_n and_o matter_n of_o faith_n further_n d._n willet_n tell_v we_o that_o vigilantius_n 13._o willet_n antilog_n pag._n 13._o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v reverence_n to_o relic_n and_o yet_o protestant_n general_o teach_v that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n d._n feild_n write_v 29._o field_n pag._n 138._o l._n 3._o cap._n 29._o in_o these_o word_n aerius_n condemn_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o name_a the_o dead_a at_o the_o altar_n and_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o they_o for_o this_o his_o
rash_a and_o inconsiderate_a holdenes_n and_o presumption_n in_o condemninge_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v just_o condemn_v for_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o evil_a in_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n neither_o do_v we_o concur_v with_o aerius_n in_o the_o reprehension_n of_o that_o primative_a and_o ancient_a church_n what_o be_v this_o practice_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n concern_v the_o dead_a for_o denial_n whereof_o aerius_n be_v condemn_v as_o d._n feild_n have_v tell_v we_o i_o will_v recite_v from_o other_o protestant_n m._n middleton_n assure_v we_o thus_o 49._o middleton_n papistom_n pag._n 64._o 45._o 46._o 51._o 47._o 48._o 49._o s._n chrisostome_n teach_v it_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n ordinance_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v a_o tradition_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n receive_v from_o the_o father_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o beg_v mercy_n of_o god_n for_o they_o the_o dead_a be_v pray_v for_o in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n of_o 273._o hull_n rom._n pole_n pag._n 86_o morton_n apol._n part_n 1._o pag._n 273._o basile_n chrisostome_n and_o epiphanius_n the_o church_n in_o epipbanius_fw-la time_n use_v to_o crave_v mercy_n for_o the_o dead_a m._n hull_n say_v leo_n 15_o leo_fw-la the_o pope_n appoint_a mass_n for_o the_o dead_a d._n morton_n cit_v from_o caluine_n this_o ipsi_fw-la veteres_fw-la preces_fw-la fundebant_fw-la pro_fw-la defunctis_fw-la the_o ancient_a father_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o give_v final_a content_n to_o d_o feild_n the_o sentence_n of_o his_o true_a greek_a church_n be_v 3._o gennad_n schol._n def_n 5._o cap._n 3._o this_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o which_o the_o latin_n call_v purgatory_n they_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n name_n catharte●ion_n they_o be_v only_o scismaticorum_fw-la sectatores_fw-la follower_n of_o schismatic_n which_o deny_v it_o the_o see_v protestant_n do_v ordinary_o teach_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o contain_v either_o express_o or_o deduceble_o in_o scripture_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v by_o tradition_n for_o denial_n of_o which_o tradition_n aerius_n be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o the_o universal_a church_n at_o that_o time_n by_o d._n feild_n teach_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o aerius_n in_o his_o opinion_n contemn_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o must_v d._n feild_n confess_v of_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n protestant_n if_o they_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v a_o tradition_n as_o they_o have_v deny_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n where_o this_o verity_n be_v teach_v to_o be_v caconicall_a scripture_n to_o gaynesay_v this_o primative_a and_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o from_o hence_o thus_o i_o argue_v again_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o s._n augustine_n allow_v by_o d._n feild_n whatsoever_o the_o whole_a church_n hold_v not_o 242._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 21._o pag._n 242._o be_v decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n but_o have_v be_v ever_o hold_v may_v right_o be_v think_v to_o have_v proceed_v from_o apostolic_a authority_n but_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v such_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o these_o protestant_n therefore_o a_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o these_o protestant_n the_o mayor_n consist_v of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n as_o they_o be_v translate_v and_o allow_v by_o d._n feild_n in_o this_o manner_n 241._o field_n pag._n 241._o have_v set_v down_o the_o kind_n and_o sort_n of_o tradition_n it_o remain_v to_o examine_v by_o what_o mean_v we_o may_v come_v to_o discern_v and_o by_o what_o rule_v we_o may_v judge_v which_o be_v true_a and_o indubitate_a tradition_n the_o first_o rule_n be_v deliver_v by_o s._n augustine_n quod_fw-la universa_fw-la 23._o aug._n l._n 4._o cont_n donatist_n cap._n 23._o tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la concilijs_fw-la institutum_fw-la sed_fw-la semper_fw-la retentum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la authoritate_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditum_fw-la rectissimè_fw-la creditur_fw-la english_v by_o d._n feild_n as_o in_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n where_o rectissimè_fw-la creditur_fw-la be_v most_o right_o believe_v he_o have_v translate_v may_v right_o be_v think_v the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v prove_v before_o by_o these_o protestant_n in_o teache_v this_o doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n resist_v by_o aerius_n and_o also_o that_o it_o be_v a_o apostolic_a tradition_n which_o all_o protestant_n of_o england_n must_v needs_o grant_v unto_o by_o s._n augustine_n and_o d._n feilds_n first_o rule_n before_o for_o by_o their_o proceed_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o graunte_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v define_v by_o counsel_n and_o by_o that_o title_n to_o be_v embrace_v that_o they_o plain_o teach_v in_o the_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n not_o take_v out_o of_o scripture_n as_o they_o teach_v this_o be_v not_o be_v nothing_o worth_a the_o 21._o articl_n of_o relig._n art_n 21._o word_n of_o their_o article_n be_v these_o thing_n ordain_v by_o general_a counsel_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v neither_o strength_n nor_o authority_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v that_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n hitherto_o their_o subscribe_v article_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n must_v needs_o also_o be_v yield_v unto_o by_o these_o protestant_n tell_v we_o before_o both_o that_o aerius_n be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v it_o as_o also_o that_o heresy_n be_v arror_n in_o some_o fundamental_a point_n sup_v cou●ll_v sup_v which_o must_v needs_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n my_o next_o argument_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o next_o rule_n of_o d._n feild_n to_o know_v true_a tradition_n and_o my_o mayor_n proposition_n shall_v be_v his_o very_a word_n thus_o next_o followe_a the_o second_o rule_n be_v whatsoever_o all_o or_o the_o 242._o feild_n supr_fw-la pag._n 242._o most_o famous_a and_o renown_v in_o all_o age_n or_o at_o the_o jest_n in_o diverse_a age_n have_v constant_o deliver_v as_o receive_v from_o they_o that_o go_v before_o they_o no_o man_n contradict_v or_o doubt_v of_o it_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a pray_v to_o saint_n single_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n especial_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o other_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n to_o be_v prove_v such_o by_o these_o protestant_n be_v in_o this_o state_n therefore_o by_o protestant_n they_o be_v apostolic_a tradition_n the_o mayor_n be_v the_o very_o say_v and_o sentence_n of_o d._n feild_n before_o and_o the_o minor_a concern_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a also_o before_o allow_v by_o these_o protestant_n the_o other_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v in_o their_o order_n this_o now_o suffice_v the_o first_o proposition_n for_o my_o next_o argument_n shall_v be_v d._n feilds_n three_o and_o last_o rule_n to_o know_v true_a and_o indubitate_a tradition_n and_o be_v deliver_v by_o he_o in_o these_o word_n the_o three_o rule_n be_v the_o constant_a testimony_n 242._o feild_n supr_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 21._o pag._n 242._o of_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n successive_o delyver_v but_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n be_v so_o prove_v by_o such_o testimony_n therefore_o a_o apostolic_a tradition_n the_o mayor_n be_v d._n feild_n sentence_n and_o the_o minor_n be_v before_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n for_o if_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o before_o by_o they_o consent_v be_v this_o verity_n not_o only_o one_o apostolic_a church_n sufficient_a for_o his_o rule_n but_o all_o do_v consent_n unto_o it_o otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o of_o all_o church_n apostolic_a there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n with_o protestant_n burr_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n ever_o teach_v thus_o and_o d._n field_n have_v tell_v we_o before_o that_o 202._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 5._o pag._n 202._o among_o apostolic_a church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v more_o special_o to_o be_v obey_v reverence_v and_o respect_v further_o thus_o i_o argue_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v either_o approve_v by_o these_o protestant_n themselves_o for_o true_a and_o indubitate_a tradition_n or_o allow_v by_o they_o that_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o father_n receive_v for_o such_o be_v to_o have_v that_o allowance_n but_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n mixture_n of_o water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n reverence_n of_o holy_a imadge_n and_o relic_n sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a vow_n of_o chastity_n and_o single_a life_n of_o
wherefore_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n of_o winchester_n d._n bilson_n d._n ●orton_n his_o late_a appeal_n with_o other_o of_o his_o protestant_n grant_v these_o proposition_n 286._o bilson_n true_a diff_n pag._n 66._o 67._o morton_n appeal_v pag._n 286._o the_o canon_n of_o the_o primatife_a church_n make_v every_o thing_n void_a that_o be_v do_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o again_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n forbid_v any_o council_n to_o be_v call_v without_o his_o consent_n which_o be_v only_o peculiar_a to_o he_o and_o his_o see_n apostolic_a and_o from_o the_o beginning_n must_v prove_v a_o singular_a preeminence_n in_o he_o and_o a_o power_n supreme_a in_o decide_v matter_n and_o doubt_n of_o faith_n therefore_o m._n ormerod_n wittness_v that_o s._n ●eo_fw-la 78._o orme_a pick_v pa._n pag._n 44._o orm._n sup_v pag._n 78._o that_o glorious_a saint_n and_o doctor_n teach_v that_o god_n do_v assist_v and_o direct_v that_o see_v in_o decree_n and_o further_o he_o wittness_v in_o these_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o preeminence_n over_o all_o church_n anacle●us_n live_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n allege_v matth._n 16._o vers_fw-la 18._o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o he_o expownd_v it_o thus_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la ecolesiam_fw-la romanam_fw-la upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n this_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o that_o apostolic_a pope_n saint_n and_o martyr_n and_o d._n downame_n grant_v that_o 105._o downame_n lib._n ●_o an●●chr_n pag._n 105._o s._n augustine_n that_o renown_a doctor_n and_o victor_n vticensis_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_a in_o those_o time_n and_o tell_v we_o further_o of_o a_o sup_n pag._n 107._o sup_n bishop_n fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o after_o recant_v it_o in_o this_o order_n he_o swear_v to_o renounce_v his_o former_a heresy_n and_o to_o profess_v and_o maintain_v that_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v profess_v all_o which_o proceed_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n and_o preeminencie_n testify_v by_o enemy_n themselves_o can_v never_o have_v be_v exercise_v by_o that_o apostolic_a see_v with_o so_o great_a approbation_n of_o saint_n and_o doctor_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o best_a estate_n thereof_o except_o supreme_a authority_n even_o in_o counsel_n themselves_o as_o those_o canon_n testify_v and_o peculiar_a assistance_n as_o s._n leo_n teach_v to_o be_v free_v from_o error_n in_o decree_n and_o consequent_o not_o to_o be_v condemn_v by_o general_a counsel_n who_o it_o be_v to_o confirm_v or_o reprove_v have_v be_v grant_v by_o christ_n unto_o it_o then_o this_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n of_o that_o church_n apostolic_a be_v thus_o both_o supreme_a and_o perpetual_a it_o may_v not_o now_o without_o irreligious_a injustice_n be_v deny_v unto_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o protestant_a relator_n of_o religion_n have_v as_o before_o exclude_v his_o fellow_n protestant_n from_o all_o hope_n of_o comfort_n and_o relief_n by_o general_a council_n add_v immediate_o of_o catholic_n in_o sup_n relation_n cap._n 47._o sup_n these_o word_n the_o other_o have_v the_o pope_n as_o a_o commom_n father_n adviser_n and_o conductor_n to_o all_o to_o reconcile_v their_o jar_n to_o appease_v their_o displeasure_n to_o decide_v their_o difference_n above_o all_o thing_n to_o draw_v their_o religion_n by_o consent_n of_o counsel_n unity_n and_o that_o this_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o over_o the_o catholic_a and_o true_o believe_v member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o of_o right_n belong_v unto_o it_o over_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v prove_v before_o by_o these_o protestant_n themselves_o sup_v cap._n 3._o sup_v further_o i_o argue_v thus_o whatsoever_o counsel_n define_v or_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o condemn_v protestant_a opinion_n defend_v against_o it_o be_v to_o be_v say_v to_o prove_v the_o religion_n of_o catholic_n but_o diverse_a counsel_n both_o allow_v by_o protestant_n for_o general_a and_o other_o in_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o confirm_v even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n be_v such_o therefore_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v prove_v by_o they_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a and_o the_o minor_a thus_o be_v prove_v first_o concern_v the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a d._n covell_n 87._o covell_a ag_n burg._n pag._n 87._o have_v tell_v we_o before_o from_o s._n hierome_n that_o it_o receive_v more_o book_n for_o scripture_n then_o protestant_n allow_v m._n middleton_n say_v it_o 39_o middlet_n papistan_n pag._n 39_o teach_v the_o dignity_n of_o rome_n over_o the_o west_n province_n at_o the_o jest_n and_o this_o by_o old_a custom_n how_o much_o more_o ample_a this_o custom_n be_v be_v prove_v before_o and_o himself_o sufficient_o insinuate_v speak_v in_o this_o manner_n papias_n sup_n pag._n 200._o sup_n live_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n teach_v peter_n primacy_n and_o romish_a episcopalitie_n and_o d._n downame_n deni_v not_o but_o the_o great_a general_a 36._o down_o l._n 1._o antich_n pag._n 36._o council_n of_o chalcedon_n attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o great_a stile_n d._n field_n before_o have_v wittness_v that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n confirm_v sup_v feild_n sup_v in_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n and_o wherein_o s._n augustine_n be_v present_a receave_v canonical_a scripture_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o do_v d._n willet_n perceive_v 89._o will●t_fw-la antil_n pag._n 88_o 89._o the_o primative_a counsel_n to_o be_v so_o clear_a for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o can_v not_o gloss_n they_o with_o any_o resemblance_n or_o colour_n of_o truth_n call_v the_o ancient_a confirm_a counsel_n of_o neocesarea_n and_o toletane_v the_o first_o and_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n before_o express_o allow_v by_o d._n sutcliffe_n the_o papal_a church_n popery_n doctrine_n in_o popery_n and_o of_o the_o seven_o general_a council_n he_o write_v thus_o the_o greek_n in_o a_o 193._o willet_n sup_v pag._n 178._o middlet_n papist_n pag._n 193._o general_a council_n hold_v at_o nice_a confirm_v and_o allow_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n m._n middleton_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n peruse_v counsel_n father_n and_o story_n from_o the_o apostle_n forward_o we_o find_v the_o print_n of_o the_o pope_n foot_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o they_o that_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o occasion_n be_v be_v allow_v both_o by_o counsel_n father_n and_o history_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o their_o article_n of_o religion_n 21._o artic._n 21._o before_o they_o have_v thus_o define_v general_a counsel_n may_v err_v and_o some_o time_n have_v err_v even_o in_o thing_n pertayninge_v unto_o god_n because_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o cause_n be_v give_v they_o have_v define_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n against_o they_o and_o because_o i_o may_v not_o in_o this_o breviate_v repeat_v many_o particular_n brief_o i_o argue_v thus_o diverse_a counsel_n allow_v by_o these_o protestant_n for_o general_a counsel_n have_v confirm_v and_o allow_v all_o or_o the_o chief_a doctrine_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o teacheath_v against_o protestant_n and_o condemn_v the_o contrary_n hold_v by_o they_o even_o by_o their_o own_o testimony_n therefore_o by_o their_o own_o judgement_n they_o be_v for_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o not_o for_o they_o the_o consequence_n be_v evident_a and_o the_o antecedent_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o they_o the_o protestant_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n write_v thus_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n be_v a_o general_a council_n 180._o d._n abbot_n ag_n d._n kill_v pag._n 38._o 48._o 49._o 51._o bilson_n willet_n apud_fw-la parkes_n pag._n 137._o 180._o so_o their_o protestant_a bishop_n d._n bilson_n and_o affirm_v the_o same_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basile_n so_o do_v doctor_n willet_n and_o grant_v the_o same_o of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o in_o these_o counsel_n the_o complete_a body_n of_o their_o protestant_a religion_n be_v condemn_v in_o their_o predecessor_n john_n wickliff_n john_n husse_n and_o hierome_n of_o prage_n and_o the_o quite_o contrary_a in_o all_o thing_n decree_v and_o conclude_v for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o further_a confirmation_n whereof_o the_o protestant_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v these_o word_n the_o council_n
venerable_a imadge_n command_v the_o make_n and_o use_v of_o they_o in_o the_o last_o canon_n they_o give_v diligent_a and_o long_a direction_n 102._o can._n 102._o unto_o priest_n how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o advise_v and_o absolve_a penitent_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n therefore_o i_o may_v conclude_v that_o protestant_n religion_n be_v utter_o condemn_v by_o general_a counsel_n both_o of_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o latter_a age_n and_o consequent_o by_o all_o other_o judgement_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o these_o man_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o all_o bishop_n doctor_n and_o professor_n of_o religion_n be_v bownde_v to_o follow_v the_o definition_n of_o general_a counsel_n chapter_n ix_o wherein_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o primative_a father_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o follow_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o how_o it_o whole_o prove_v the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n utter_o condemninge_v all_o protestant_a religion_n the_o authority_n and_o value_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o that_o they_o teach_v and_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n even_o by_o the_o grant_n of_o these_o protestant_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o last_o chapter_n for_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n in_o general_a counsel_n and_o public_a assembly_n and_o sentence_n to_o which_o by_o their_o own_o consent_n and_o subscription_n they_o submit_v and_o bownde_v themselves_o as_o to_o their_o lawful_a and_o command_a rule_n they_o can_v not_o and_o may_v not_o teach_v and_o write_v otherwise_o in_o private_a then_o in_o public_a themselves_o and_o other_o have_v authoritative_o conclude_v yet_o for_o a_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o protestant_n in_o all_o thing_n i_o will_v brief_o entreat_v of_o these_o also_o as_o they_o wer●_n private_a writer_n and_o first_o of_o their_o authority_n i_o argue_v thus_o whoso_o ever_o allow_v in_o show_n and_o word_n among_o the_o ignorant_a reader_n or_o hearer_n of_o their_o writing_n and_o sermon_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o primative_a father_n to_o procure_v people_n to_o believe_v that_o their_o religion_n and_o doctrine_n agree_v with_o they_o as_o man_n teach_v and_o write_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n do_v yield_v unto_o they_o great_a respect_n and_o reverence_n ought_v true_o and_o sincere_o to_o believe_v and_o embrace_v their_o religion_n but_o these_o english_a protestant_n writer_n be_v such_o therefore_o they_o ought_v and_z be_v bownde_v to_o follow_v and_o embrace_v their_o doctrine_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o as_o dissimulation_n crafty_a and_o double_a dealeinge_n to_o delude_v and_o deceive_v other_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v a_o vile_a and_o abominable_a sin_n against_o truth_n charity_n and_o justice_n so_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n wherein_o not_o the_o least_o equivocation_n of_o to_o save_v a_o man_n life_n may_v be_v use_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o offence_n most_o damnable_a and_o develishe_a the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n their_o protestant_a bishop_n d._n bilson_n write_v thus_o the_o 85._o bilson_n suru_fw-fr pag._n 85._o ancient_a consent_n of_o godly_a father_n be_v with_o great_a care_n to_o be_v search_v and_o fallowed_a of_o we_o chief_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o again_o we_o rest_v upon_o the_o sup_n pag._n 82._o sup_n scripture_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o counsel_n and_o make_v the_o same_o reason_n with_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o these_o sup_n pag._n 83._o sup_n word_n je_v every_o man_n shall_v wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o his_o fancy_n and_o suck_v thence_o not_o the_o truth_n but_o the_o patronage_n of_o his_o error_n and_o he_o add_v that_o s._n augustine_n give_v this_o respect_n not_o only_o to_o general_a counsel_n but_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o particular_a father_n irenaeus_n cyprian_n hilarius_n ambrose_n gregory_n etc._n etc._n chrisestome_n basil_n and_o other_o d._n sutcliffe_n write_v thus_o we_o 87._o sutcl_n subver_n pag._n 87._o acknowledge_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o five_o and_o sixth_o age_n and_o adjoine_v ourselves_o to_o that_o church_n and_o to_o credit_n his_o cause_n and_o make_v his_o reader_n believe_v he_o consent_v with_o those_o father_n he_o speak_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o father_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v for_o we_o protestant_n 17._o sutel_n ag_n d._n kell_n pag._n 17._o and_o not_o for_o the_o pope_n d._n willer_n know_v of_o what_o little_a credit_n his_o bare_a word_n be_v even_o by_o his_o protestant_n as_o appear_v hereafter_o will_v procure_v credit_n to_o his_o protestancye_n by_o damnable_a perjury_n in_o these_o word_n i_o take_v god_n to_o witness_v before_o 263._o willet_n antilog_n pag._n 263._o who_o i_o must_v render_v account_n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o i_o defend_v be_v teach_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o more_o substantial_a point_n by_o these_o historian_n counsel_n father_n that_o live_v within_o sign_n or_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o further_a sup_n pag._n 264._o sup_n thus_o it_o be_v most_o notorious_o evident_a that_o for_o the_o gross_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o transsabstantiation_n sacrifice_n of_o mass_n worship_v of_o imadge_n justification_n by_o work_n the_o supreamacie_n of_o the_o pope_n prohibition_n of_o marriage_n and_o such_o other_o they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v no_o show_n at_o all_o of_o any_o evidence_n from_o the_o father_n within_o syve_a hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o which_o question_n among_o other_o i_o be_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n be_v these_o protestant_n themselves_o hereafter_o in_o their_o place_n and_o in_o a_o other_o page_n of_o the_o same_o treatise_n he_o write_v thus_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o live_v within_o six_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n be_v 73._o willet_n antil_n pag._n 271._o k._n speech_n in_o parl_n an._n 1603_o conference_n at_o hampt_a pag._n 73._o against_o they_o his_o majesty_n speech_n in_o parliament_n it_o this_o i_o will_v ever_o yield_v all_o reverence_n to_o antiquity_n and_o in_o their_o conference_n for_o my_o part_n i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o answer_n the_o objection_n of_o papist_n when_o they_o charge_v we_o with_o novelty_n but_o to_o tell_v they_o their_o abuse_n be_v new_a and_o he_o approve_v the_o day_n of_o constantine_n for_o a_o rule_n in_o religion_n saying_n constantine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v appeach_v of_o superstition_n but_o thing_n then_o use_v may_v still_o be_v continue_v 69._o confer_v pag._n 69._o but_o now_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o these_o protestant_a doctor_n and_o minister_n be_v so_o far_o from_o justify_v these_o their_o oath_n protestation_n and_o assertion_n they_o be_v enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v those_o primative_a father_n do_v allow_v teach_v and_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n which_o these_o man_n impugn_v and_o persecute_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n do_v not_o only_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o those_o primative_a learned_a and_o holy_a father_n but_o call_v and_o censure_v they_o with_o uncivil_a barbarous_a contemptuous_a and_o irreligious_a name_n and_o phrase_n for_o proof_n whereof_o i_o argue_v thus_o whatsoever_o sect_n religion_n or_o people_n be_v urge_v by_o such_o testimony_n as_o protestant_n have_v give_v for_o allowance_n of_o the_o father_n authority_n before_o to_o follow_v they_o accept_v of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o these_o controversy_n of_o religion_n do_v utter_o refuse_v and_o disallow_v it_o though_o his_o majesty_n shall_v approve_v it_o but_o say_v they_o be_v unfit_a judge_n in_o controversy_n of_o divinity_n that_o their_o judgement_n be_v little_a to_o be_v respect_v their_o testimony_n be_v not_o worth_a answer_v there_o be_v no_o probability_n in_o their_o opinion_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v deserve_v not_o credit_n be_v not_o credible_a to_o be_v admit_v be_v not_o fit_a judge_n be_v to_o partial_a be_v to_o be_v forsake_v contemn_a and_o despise_v such_o man_n can_v with_o any_o appearance_n of_o truth_n affirm_v those_o primative_a father_n and_o doctor_n to_o allow_v their_o religion_n and_o proceed_n or_o defend_v their_o cause_n by_o their_o authority_n but_o these_o protestant_n doctor_n and_o minister_n of_o england_n be_v such_o therefore_o those_o father_n be_v not_o for_o their_o religion_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v to_o manifest_o true_a and_o the_o minor_a be_v prove_v also_o by_o these_o protestant_n themselves_o in_o this_o manner_n m._n wotton_n express_o control_v the_o king_n sentence_n before_o concern_v 16._o wotton_n def_n of_o perk._n pag._n 15._o 16._o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n and_o antiquity_n his_o word_n be_v these_o the_o
their_o own_o writing_n and_o authority_n publish_v allow_v or_o receive_v among_o they_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o our_o sovereign_n king_n james_n in_o england_n that_o in_o all_o the_o chief_a controversy_n of_o this_o time_n in_o particular_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v only_a orthodox_n catholic_a and_o true_a and_o the_o contrary_a of_o these_o protestant_n erroneous_a heretical_a and_o damnable_a here_o end_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o general_a ground_n in_o religion_n and_o ensue_v the_o second_o of_o the_o particular_a question_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n of_o england_n the_o second_o part_n of_o english_a protestant_n recantation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n chapter_n i._n wherein_o by_o the_o present_a english_a protestant_n writer_n be_v prove_v against_o protestant_n and_o their_o doctrine_n that_o the_o predestination_n of_o particular_a man_n can_v without_o particular_a revelation_n be_v certain_o know_v much_o less_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o among_o all_o question_n of_o religion_n the_o eternal_a predestination_n of_o man_n to_o be_v save_v be_v from_o eternity_n in_o god_n can_v have_v none_o before_o it_o in_o duration_n so_o in_o order_n let_v we_o first_o entreat_v and_o begin_v from_o thence_o how_o fare_n and_o certain_o it_o may_v be_v know_v of_o particular_a man_n preordination_n to_o glory_n in_o this_o world_n the_o holy_a council_n of_o trent_n advertise_v all_o man_n with_o s._n paul_n to_o work_v their_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a have_v thus_o define_v of_o 12._o philipp_n 2._o v._n 12._o conc._n trid._n sess_v 6._o can_n 12._o this_o secret_a so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o this_o mortality_n no_o man_n ought_v so_o much_o to_o presume_v of_o the_o hide_a mystery_n of_o god_n predestination_n that_o he_o certain_o determine_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a as_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o which_o be_v justify_v can_v either_o sin_v no_o more_o or_o if_o he_o shall_v sin_v aught_o to_o promise_v to_o himself_o a_o certain_a amendment_n for_o except_o by_o special_a revelation_n it_o can_v be_v know_v who_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o like_a doctrine_n it_o conclude_v against_o the_o predestinary_n of_o sup_n can._n 15._o 16._o sup_n this_o time_n in_o the_o 15._o and_o 16._o canon_n of_o the_o same_o session_n the_o contradictory_n of_o which_o catholic_a position_n have_v be_v so_o fare_n and_o general_o defend_v by_o protestant_n that_o it_o be_v as_o the_o infra_fw-la see_v cap._n 2._o infra_fw-la principal_a and_o chief_a ground_n of_o their_o religion_n that_o as_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n so_o this_o faith_n be_v that_o which_o assure_v he_o that_o he_o be_v just_a in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n that_o he_o can_v at_o the_o jest_n final_o or_o total_o fall_v from_o grace_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o he_o know_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v both_o just_a and_o predestinate_a as_o will_v sufficient_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n by_o english_a protestant_n since_o his_o majesty_n entrance_n into_o england_n the_o short_a time_n which_o i_o have_v limit_v to_o dispute_v against_o they_o by_o themselves_o what_o inconvenience_n abuse_n and_o iniquity_n this_o invention_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n will_v in_o some_o sort_n appear_v in_o this_o chapter_n by_o their_o own_o writeing_n and_o be_v so_o much_o know_v to_o all_o man_n by_o lamentable_a experience_n that_o i_o need_v not_o to_o repeat_v it_o in_o this_o place_n wherefore_o i_o will_v only_o confute_v this_o protestant_a opinion_n by_o the_o present_a english_a protestant_n writer_n and_o thereby_o demonstrate_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o cite_v sacred_a council_n to_o be_v most_o true_a and_o religious_a in_o this_o point_n even_o by_o their_o sentence_n then_o first_o concern_v this_o proposition_n i_o argue_v thus_o no_o doctrine_n or_o opinion_n which_o be_v a_o desperate_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o divinity_n and_o to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o predestination_n be_v or_o can_v be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n in_o this_o question_n but_o the_o predestinarie_a protestant_a doctrine_n with_o assurednes_n of_o faith_n without_o particular_a revelation_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v be_v thus_o desperate_a contrary_a to_o divinity_n and_o to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o predestination_n therefore_o it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n to_o deny_v the_o mayor_n or_o first_o proposition_n be_v blasphemy_n because_o god_n infinite_a and_o immutable_a wisdom_n can_v possible_o command_v or_o reveal_v for_o truth_n any_o such_o error_n therefore_o the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n be_v authoritatyvely_a with_o english_a protestant_n conclude_v against_o this_o predestinarie_a opinion_n in_o the_o public_a protestant_a conference_n at_o hampton_n court_n before_o his_o 29._o conference_n at_o hampton_n court_n pag._n 29._o majesty_n and_o with_o his_o allowance_n in_o these_o word_n very_o many_o in_o these_o day_n neglect_v holiness_n of_o life_n presume_v too_o much_o of_o persist_v in_o grace_n laye_v all_o their_o religion_n upon_o predestination_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v save_v i_o shall_v be_v save_v which_o be_v a_o desperate_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o good_a divinity_n and_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o predestination_n wherein_o we_o shall_v reason_v rather_o ascendendo_fw-la then_o discendendo_fw-la thus_o i_o live_v in_o obedience_n to_o god_n in_o love_n my_o neighbour_n i_o follow_v my_o vocation_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o i_o trust_v that_o god_n have_v elect_v and_o predestinate_v i_o to_o salvation_n hitherto_o the_o consent_n of_o this_o english_a protestant_n conference_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o no_o certanitie_n much_o less_o by_o faith_n but_o only_o a_o moral_a trust_n or_o hope_v according_a to_o the_o good_a life_n of_o man_n can_v be_v have_v without_o revelation_n that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a seconde_o suppose_v which_o with_o the_o scripture_n all_o protestant_n grant_v that_o without_o grace_n by_o christ_n and_o persist_v in_o it_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v i_o argue_v thus_o no_o man_n that_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o he_o shall_v fall_v from_o grace_n can_v be_v certain_a with_o certanitie_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v predestinate_a or_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o without_o particular_a revelation_n all_o man_n protestant_n and_o other_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o they_o shall_v fall_v from_o grace_n therefore_o no_o man_n without_o particular_a revelation_n be_v or_o can_v be_v certain_a he_o be_v predestinate_a the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v certain_o true_a and_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o same_o cite_a protestant_a assembly_n cite_v the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n before_o relate_v against_o the_o certainerie_n of_o predestination_n conclude_v the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n thus_o we_o may_v full_o from_o grace_n 30._o conference_n at_o hampton_n sup_v pag._n 30._o and_o add_v the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n shall_v be_v handle_v with_o great_a discretion_n which_o he_o insinuate_v the_o protestant_n have_v not_o do_v and_o speak_v plain_o of_o they_o in_o these_o word_n the_o infer_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o stand_v and_o persist_v in_o grace_n be_v a_o desperate_a presumption_n the_o like_a be_v teach_v more_o at_o large_a in_o other_o place_n of_o that_o conference_n where_o it_o be_v also_o 43._o confer_v sup_v pag._n 41._o 42._o 43._o acknowledge_v that_o present_a justification_n or_o justice_n be_v lose_v by_o any_o mortal_a or_o grevous_a sin_v which_o to_o be_v frequent_o commit_v by_o protestant_n will_v appear_v hereafter_o by_o their_o own_o testimony_n my_o three_o argument_n be_v this_o no_o doctrine_n that_o be_v pestilent_a and_o scandalous_a to_o all_o church_n be_v or_o can_v be_v true_a doctrine_n but_o this_o predestinarie_a doctrine_n be_v such_o therefore_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v true_a the_o mayor_n 45._o relation_n of_o religion_n cap._n 45._o be_v evident_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o protestant_a relator_n of_o religion_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o protestant_n in_o germany_n will_v rather_o return_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o admit_v this_o protestant_a point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o call_v predestinarie_a pestilence_n and_o add_v that_o this_o with_o some_o other_o 48._o cap._n 48._o of_o their_o opinion_n have_v exceed_o scandalize_v all_o other_o church_n my_o four_o argument_n be_v this_o nothing_o that_o be_v not_o reveal_v of_o god_n can_v be_v believe_v with_o certainty_n of_o faith_n or_o with_o faith_n but_o particular_a man_n predestination_n be_v not_o reveal_v of_o god_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v by_o faith_n believe_v the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a because_o god_n revelation_n or_o to_o be_v reveal_v of_o he_o be_v the_o formal_a
protestant_a preacher_n in_o his_o more_o than_o uncharitable_a book_n against_o catholic_n witness_v of_o etc._n prot._n proof-part_n 1._o c._n 9_o cap._n 8._o etc._n etc._n his_o own_o brethren_n in_o religion_n the_o english_a protestant_n of_o the_o more_o than_o irreligious_a and_o profane_a behaviour_n of_o their_o clergy_n of_o english_a protestant_n in_o abuse_v falsefie_v &_o pervertinge_v the_o holy_a scripture_n father_n counsel_n and_o all_o authority_n for_o religion_n i_o have_v for_o this_o point_n sufficient_o entreat_v before_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o just_a or_o righteous_a but_o most_o unjust_a and_o impious_a by_o their_o own_o testimony_n what_o other_o syn_n they_o be_v defile_v with_o let_v their_o own_o life_n and_o the_o world_n censure_n but_o sure_a i_o be_o they_o be_v not_o void_a of_o all_o grevous_a sin_n which_o they_o must_v be_v if_o they_o be_v justify_v and_o in_o grace_n and_o such_o they_o must_v be_v in_o deed_n before_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o except_o they_o can_v know_v that_o to_o be_v which_o be_v not_o as_o their_o sharp_a wit_n will_v seem_v to_o do_v in_o this_o and_o other_o question_n of_o religion_n then_o see_v it_o be_v to_o apparent_a that_o protestant_n be_v not_o just_a either_o by_o their_o imagine_a assureinge_v faith_n or_o howsoever_o let_v we_o further_o examine_v by_o these_o writer_n and_o protestant_a professor_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o possible_a that_o this_o suppose_a faith_n shall_v justify_v the_o contrary_a whereof_o thus_o i_o demonstrate_v from_o their_o own_o writing_n all_o man_n that_o pretend_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o this_o imagine_a faith_n must_v needs_o be_v justify_v by_o some_o act_n or_o act_n thereof_o but_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o any_o act_n or_o act_n thereof_o therefore_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o it_o the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_a the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v by_o protestant_n first_o d._n field_n with_o 177._o field_n pag._n 177._o other_o do_v and_o of_o necessity_n must_v affirm_v that_o in_o this_o business_n of_o their_o fantasy_v justification_n their_o devise_a faith_n have_v twoe_o and_o only_o twoe_o act_n one_o go_v before_o justification_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v entreat_v god_n and_o humble_v ourselves_o when_o we_o be_v not_o just_a and_o this_o act_n as_o he_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o go_v before_o justification_n so_o he_o thus_o free_o confess_v that_o it_o do_v not_o justify_v the_o second_o act_n as_o he_o tell_v we_o do_v follow_v justification_n and_o so_o by_o no_o possibility_n because_o the_o cause_n can_v be_v after_o the_o effect_n cause_v by_o it_o that_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v wherefore_o his_o own_o word_n of_o this_o act_n of_o their_o invent_a faith_n be_v these_o she_o do_v not_o active_o justify_v but_o find_v the_o thing_n do_v therefore_o see_v they_o teach_v there_o be_v but_o two_o act_n in_o their_o new_a faith_n the_o first_o and_o second_o te_fw-la last_o which_v admit_v no_o more_o and_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o other_o nor_o both_o together_o because_o they_o grant_v there_o be_v no_o partial_a influence_n or_o cooperation_n from_o they_o to_o that_o purpose_n do_v do_v or_o can_v justify_v there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o justification_n by_o such_o idle_a faith_n for_o so_o two_o contradictorye_n shall_v be_v true_a man_n be_v justify_v by_o some_o act_n of_o faith_n man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o any_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o in_o logic_n and_o nature_n be_v know_v to_o be_v unpossible_a and_o a_o stupid_a absurdity_n to_o affirm_v it_o this_o matter_n be_v further_o prove_v by_o d._n covell_n who_o reject_v luther_n 42._o covell_a def_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 42._o opinion_n in_o this_o question_n grant_v a_o seperabilitie_n of_o faith_n and_o work_v and_o that_o faith_n as_o they_o common_o grant_v do_v not_o justify_v then_o justification_n can_v possible_o be_v by_o only_a faith_n which_o in_o a_o other_o treatise_n he_o declare_v by_o example_n in_o these_o word_n faith_n be_v the_o fowndation_n of_o spiritual_a building_n of_o god_n house_n charity_n the_o roof_n without_o which_o the_o best_a be_v 148._o covell_n against_o burges_n pag._n 148._o but_o as_o house_n uncover_v that_o can_v long_o continue_v then_o justification_n which_o be_v the_o roof_n of_o our_o spiritual_a buildinge_n in_o this_o world_n be_v and_o must_n needs_o be_v the_o work_n and_o buildinge_n of_o charity_n and_o not_o of_o faith_n alone_o which_o demonstrative_o be_v true_a by_o his_o grant_n that_o faith_n and_o the_o work_n of_o charity_n may_v be_v separate_v for_o they_o consent_v that_o without_o such_o work_v man_n be_v not_o justify_v therefore_o not_o possible_o by_o this_o their_o poetical_a faith_n further_o both_o the_o present_a protestant_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n d._n george_n abbot_n against_o d._n hill_n and_o d._n feild_n also_o do_v often_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n then_o suppose_v from_o my_o first_o chapter_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o work_n by_o the_o grant_n of_o the_o same_o d._n feild_n 1._o protest_v proaf_n part_n 1._o cap._n 1._o d_o covell_n d._n sutcliffe_n m._n wotton_n and_o m._n ormerod_n that_o the_o direction_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v her_o judgement_n to_o be_v rest_v in_o that_o it_o have_v authority_n to_o command_v her_o child_n the_o judgement_n of_o it_o be_v a_o very_a special_a ground_n of_o faith_n support_v the_o truth_n as_o a_o pillar_n do_v underpropp_n a_o building_n be_v a_o diligent_a and_o true_a keepr_fw-la of_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o she_o change_v nothing_o diminish_v nothing_o at_o any_o time_n add_v nothing_o superfluous_a lose_v not_o her_o own_o usurp_v not_o thing_n belong_v to_o other_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n remission_n of_o syn_n or_o hope_v of_o eternal_a life_n out_o of_o the_o church_n all_o which_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o those_o last_o cite_v protestant_n relate_v in_o that_o place_n from_o which_o grant_n thus_o i_o argue_v no_o doctrine_n or_o opinion_n that_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o horrible_a unworthy_a any_o christian_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n be_v or_o can_v possible_o be_v true_a but_o the_o paradox_n of_o protestant_n that_o this_o their_o suppose_a only_a faith_n do_v justify_v be_v such_o therefore_o it_o neither_o be_v or_o can_v be_v true_a the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a and_o to_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n be_v to_o deny_v all_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n for_o if_o he_o shall_v or_o can_v teach_v or_o reveal_v to_o man_n to_o follow_v doctrine_n that_o be_v horrible_a unworthy_a a_o christian_n against_o his_o own_o law_n and_o natural_a light_n such_o doctrine_n can_v not_o be_v true_a nor_o he_o honour_v as_o god_n but_o to_o be_v account_v a_o deceaver_n and_o seducer_n the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n so_o true_a to_o be_v obey_v and_o follow_v in_o doctrine_n by_o these_o protestant_n as_o before_o be_v cite_v for_o hieremias_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n chief_a in_o 5._o hieremias_n patriarcha_fw-la constant_a in_fw-la censura_fw-la cap._n 5._o that_o church_n in_o his_o censure_n against_o protestant_n use_v these_o word_n in_o this_o article_n the_o doctrine_n that_o only_a faith_n do_v justify_v be_v a_o thing_n most_o horrible_a unto_o or_o thy_o any_o christian_a against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n therefore_o these_o man_n maintain_v so_o horrible_a doctrine_n by_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o they_o teach_v and_o out_o of_o which_o as_o they_o affirm_v before_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n remission_n of_o syn_n or_o hope_v of_o eternal_a life_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v just_a justify_v or_o to_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o mean_n in_o their_o proceed_n that_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n they_o have_v leave_v unto_o themselves_o no_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n or_o salvation_n at_o all_o moreover_o i_o argue_v thus_o nothing_n which_o can_v be_v defend_v without_o grant_v and_o mayntayninge_v more_o new_a and_o strange_a absurdity_n and_o impossibility_n be_v or_o can_v be_v true_a doctrine_n but_o this_o protestant_a assertion_n of_o their_o only_a assure_v faith_n justify_v be_v such_o therefore_o it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v true_a the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o every_o truth_n may_v and_o be_v defend_v without_o any_o absurdity_n or_o inconvenience_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v also_o manifest_o prove_v from_o d._n feild_n and_o other_o before_o to_o who_o i_o add_v m._n wotton_n who_o laboure_v what_o he_o can_v to_o defend_v this_o his_o forge_a faith_n justification_n and_o answer_v that_o place_n
it_o but_o when_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v there_o be_v such_o degree_n of_o inherent_a justice_n and_o more_o or_o less_o justification_n by_o it_o therefore_o there_o be_v justification_n by_o inherent_a grace_n and_o justice_n the_o mayor_n and_o first_o proposition_n be_v manifest_o true_a the_o second_o be_v prove_v by_o d._n feild_n who_o 118._o field_n pag._n 118._o acknowledge_v the_o denial_n of_o inherent_a grace_n to_o be_v untruthe_n and_o be_v so_o far_o ashamed_a of_o the_o protestant_a opinion_n in_o this_o point_n that_o he_o write_v thus_o luther_n never_o deny_v inherent_a righteousness_n to_o be_v more_o in_o one_o then_o in_o a_o other_o and_o more_o in_o mary_n the_o mother_n of_o christ_n then_o in_o any_o other_o then_o of_o necessity_n there_o be_v inherent_a justice_n and_o grace_n in_o man_n justify_v and_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o it_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o justice_n or_o righteousness_n if_o it_o do_v not_o make_v man_n just_a and_o righteous_a for_o be_v inherent_a as_o he_o confess_v it_o must_v needs_o denominate_v the_o subject_n wherein_o it_o be_v as_o all_o inherent_a and_o intrinsical_a form_n and_o quality_n do_v heat_n cold_a beauty_n etc._n etc._n make_v man_n and_o body_n wherein_o they_o be_v inherent_a to_o be_v and_o be_v call_v true_o hot_a cold_a beautiful_a etc._n etc._n and_o see_v in_o just_a man_n there_o be_v degree_n of_o this_o inherent_a grace_n and_o justice_n increase_n and_o access_n of_o it_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v inherent_a grace_n and_o justice_n for_o new_a degree_n of_o increase_n be_v not_o where_o the_o thing_n increase_v be_v not_o neither_o the_o comparative_a degree_n more_z but_o where_o the_o positive_a be_v no_o man_n or_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v better_o fair_a cold_a hot_a &c._n &c._n than_o it_o be_v before_o except_o before_o it_o be_v good_a fair_a cold_a hot_a etc._n etc._n again_o i_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n whatsoever_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o glory_n and_o increase_v thereof_o in_o heaven_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o justice_n and_o justification_n from_o which_o such_o glory_n come_v but_o inherent_a grace_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o glory_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o difference_n thereof_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o justification_n in_o earth_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a and_o the_o minor_n be_v prove_v by_o d._n feild_n in_o these_o word_n from_o this_o imparity_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n it_o be_v that_o there_o 116._o field_n pag._n 116._o be_v so_o different_a degree_n of_o joy_n and_o glory_n find_v among_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n then_o see_v the_o difference_n and_o excess_n of_o glory_n and_o joy_n in_o heaven_n proceed_v from_o the_o imparity_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n or_o justice_n and_o righteousness_n or_o justice_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o glory_n inherent_a righteousness_n or_o justice_n must_v needs_o be_v that_o by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o earth_n and_o glorify_v in_o heaven_n three_o from_o the_o same_o protestant_a doctor_n i_o argue_v thus_o all_o justice_n and_o glory_n of_o man_n come_v either_o from_o inherent_a grace_n or_o impute_v but_o not_o from_o impute_a therefore_o from_o that_o which_o be_v inherent_a the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a for_o all_o grace_n must_v needs_o be_v inherent_a or_o not_o inherent_a and_o if_o not_o inherent_a it_o be_v by_o imputation_n if_o any_o way_n at_o all_o the_o second_o proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o d._n feild_n who_o do_v not_o only_o renounce_v the_o error_n of_o equality_n of_o joy_n and_o reward_n in_o heaven_n teach_v by_o jovinian_a and_o seeme_a to_o follow_v upon_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o glory_n by_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n but_o clear_o also_o confess_v with_o catholic_n &_o the_o recite_v council_n of_o trent_n joy_n and_o reward_n in_o heaven_n for_o inherent_a justice_n and_o not_o impute_v righteousness_n his_o word_n be_v these_o that_o there_o be_v a_o equality_n 140._o field_n pag._n 140._o of_o joy_n and_o reward_n in_o heaven_n impute_v to_o jovinian_a we_o do_v not_o hold_v where_o his_o word_n we_o and_o plural_a number_n prove_v he_o speak_v general_o for_o protestant_n and_o concern_v the_o second_o he_o write_v thus_o from_o impute_a righteousness_n no_o imparity_n of_o joy_n can_v flow_v then_o see_v the_o first_o sentence_n grant_v a_o imparity_n of_o joy_n and_o reward_n and_o the_o second_o affirm_v it_o come_v not_o from_o impute_a righteousness_n the_o three_o and_o conclusion_n must_v needs_o be_v this_o that_o both_o joy_n and_o reward_n in_o heaven_n and_o their_o degree_n imparity_n or_o inequality_n proceed_v from_o inherent_a justice_n my_o next_o argument_n be_v this_o all_o grace_n wherewith_o man_n soul_n in_o sacrament_n or_o otherwise_o be_v fill_v and_o be_v infuse_v into_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v inherent_a but_o grace_n of_o justification_n and_o sanctification_n be_v such_o therefore_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o inherent_a grace_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a for_o fillinge_v and_o infusion_n be_v by_o put_v in_o of_o thing_n and_o not_o by_o imputation_n for_o no_o such_o thing_n can_v fill_v any_o thing_n the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v by_o d._n feild_n speake_v of_o child_n baptize_v and_o the_o like_a reason_n be_v of_o other_o his_o word_n be_v these_o child_n when_o they_o be_v adopt_v and_o make_v 179._o feild_n pag._n 179._o the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v instify_v and_o sanctify_v be_v fill_v with_o habit_n or_o potential_a hability_n of_o these_o virtue_n faith_n hope_n and_o love_n the_o same_o 10._o field_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o pag._n 10._o doctrine_n he_o teach_v in_o a_o other_o place_n to_o be_v cite_v hereafter_o when_o i_o shall_v entreat_v of_o the_o grace_n and_o efficacy_n of_o sacrament_n where_o this_o article_n will_v be_v more_o declare_v for_o this_o time_n it_o be_v further_o confirm_v by_o d._n covell_n who_o also_o in_o plain_a term_n approve_v 114._o covell_a def_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 114._o habitual_a and_o real_a infusion_n of_o grace_n and_o concern_v justification_n avonch_v thus_o the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n in_o this_o point_n be_v not_o unjust_o call_v sup_n pag._n 40._o sup_n into_o question_n by_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o seem_v to_o labour_n to_o reconcile_v that_o which_o he_o esteem_v the_o best_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n further_o i_o argue_v thus_o all_o that_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n a_o quality_n in_o the_o soul_n a_o internal_a habit_n and_o infuse_v from_o god_n be_v inherent_a but_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v inherent_a the_o first_o proposition_n be_v manifest_o true_a the_o second_n be_v prove_v by_o m._n 82._o wotton_n def_n of_o perk._n pag._n 81._o 82._o wotton_n in_o these_o word_n grace_n be_v some_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o quality_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o habit_n of_o grace_n be_v infuse_v from_o god_n last_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o reason_n thus_o whatsoever_o make_v every_o true_a christian_a to_o be_v righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v true_a justice_n but_o inherent_a grace_n make_v every_o true_a christian_a righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n therefore_o inherent_a grace_n be_v true_a justice_n the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_o true_a and_o the_o minor_a thus_o plain_o prove_v by_o m._n wotton_n in_o 186._o wotton_n def_n of_o perk._n pag._n 12._o pag._n 186._o these_o word_n we_o acknowledge_v every_o true_a christian_a to_o be_v righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o answer_v for_o protestant_n and_o writing_n this_o for_o their_o acknowledgement_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n will_v have_v we_o take_v it_o for_o their_o common_a opinion_n and_o thus_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o inherent_a grace_n be_v direct_o and_o demonstrative_o prove_v to_o be_v true_a even_o by_o protestant_n and_o their_o denial_n thereof_o together_o with_o their_o conceit_n of_o imputative_a righteous_a also_o by_o themselves_o convince_v for_o false_a and_o erroneous_a which_o be_v further_o confirm_v by_o m._n higgon_n in_o his_o sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_n wherein_o speak_v of_o the_o just_a he_o call_v they_o parson_n have_v 24._o theoph._n higg_n ser._n 3._o mart_n 1610._o pag_n 24._o grace_n dwell_v in_o they_o and_o again_o we_o have_v inherent_a righteousness_n in_o ourselves_o then_o see_v form_n inherent_a do_v and_o must_v needs_o denominate_v the_o subject_n in_o which_o they_o inhere_o and_o be_v subject_v as_o heat_n cold_a whiteness_n blackness_n and_o the_o like_a be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o be_v subject_v be_v name_v and_o true_o be_v thing_n hot_a cold_a white_a and_o black_a so_o
pag._n 74._o 91._o no_o man_n do_v teach_v that_o the_o commandment_n be_v absolute_o and_o symp_o unpossible_a therefore_o they_o may_v be_v keep_v further_o i_o argue_v thus_o all_o that_o grant_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n express_v before_o out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v true_a in_o this_o point_n and_o that_o god_n exact_v of_o we_o to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n must_v needs_o grant_v the_o possibility_n to_o do_v it_o and_o consent_v herein_o with_o catholic_n but_o english_a protestant_n doe_n or_o must_v do_v so_o therefore_o they_o must_v grant_v this_o possibility_n and_o consent_n to_o catholic_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o d._n covell_n thus_o 58._o covell_a def_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 55._o 58._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n opinion_n be_v true_a concern_v commit_v or_o avoyde_v sin_v and_o again_o god_n exact_v we_o shall_v keep_v all_o the_o commandment_n 57_o pag._n 57_o and_o further_o in_o these_o word_n if_o we_o be_v not_o ourselves_o wanteinge_v though_o we_o can_v avoid_v all_o syn_n yet_o we_o may_v and_o shall_v avoid_v all_o great_a and_o presumptuous_a syn_n and_o to_o make_v this_o matter_n more_o clear_a if_o it_o need_v he_o add_v because_o s._n sup_n pag._n 58._o sup_n james_n say_v he_o that_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o offend_v in_o one_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o some_o thought_n all_o syn_n to_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o that_o commit_v any_o one_o but_o s._n james_n only_o tell_v to_o we_o that_o god_n exact_v a_o keep_n of_o they_o all_o this_o then_o be_v the_o conclusion_n that_o though_o no_o man_n be_v without_o all_o sin_v yet_o many_o be_v without_o many_o presumptuous_a syn_n which_o trough_n prayer_n and_o good_a mean_n they_o avoid_v what_o these_o man_n teach_v of_o venial_a syn_n and_o the_o distinction_n of_o they_o from_o mortal_a and_o grevous_a syn_n agreeable_a to_o catholic_a doctrine_n i_o shall_v entreat_v hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n further_o i_o argue_v thus_o if_o true_a charity_n such_o as_o keep_v the_o commandment_n may_v be_v have_v in_o this_o life_n they_o they_o may_v be_v keep_v but_o such_o charity_n may_v be_v have_v in_o this_o life_n therefore_o the_o commandment_n may_v be_v keep_v the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o the_o sufficient_a cause_n be_v put_v the_o effect_n must_v needs_o be_v possible_a otherwise_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o sufficient_a contrary_a to_o our_o supposition_n 15._o wotton_n d●f_n of_o perkins_n pag_n 15._o the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v by_o m._n wotton_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n true_a charity_n though_o not_o perfect_a may_v be_v have_v in_o this_o life_n and_o by_o it_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n may_v be_v and_o be_v keep_v though_o not_o perfect_o therefore_o which_o he_o grant_v in_o express_a word_n the_o commandment_n both_o may_v and_o be_v keep_v therefore_o may_v be_v keep_v for_o thing_n unpossible_a neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v do_v ad_fw-la impossibilia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la potentia_fw-la there_o be_v no_o power_n to_o thing_n unpossible_a and_o the_o same_o protestant_a writer_n speake_v of_o inherent_a justice_n write_v thus_o neither_o do_v we_o protestant_n deny_a that_o this_o inherent_a righteousness_n 175._o wotton_n sup_v pag._n 174._o 175._o be_v such_o as_o may_v enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o shall_v when_o it_o be_v perfect_a righteousness_n say_v austin_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o not_o to_o sin_v not_o to_o sin_n be_v to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v as_o himself_o present_o expownd_v it_o to_o do_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v forbid_v and_o to_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v to_o he_o i_o may_v add_v d._n barlow_n protestant_a late_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n who_o 304._o barlowe_n answ_n to_o a_o name_n less_o cath._n pag._n 304._o relate_v two_o thing_n which_o may_v serve_v this_o purpose_n the_o first_o be_v how_o prince_n have_v the_o great_a temptation_n &_o be_v most_o unlikely_a by_o that_o mean_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o keep_v themselves_o from_o great_a syn_n his_o word_n be_v these_o king_n have_v many_o occasion_n which_o may_v allure_v they_o to_o sin_v especial_o have_v that_o privilege_n in_o scripture_n whether_o exgratia_fw-la or_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la whether_o by_o exemption_n from_o god_n or_o fear_v of_o man_n that_o no_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o they_o why_o do_v you_o thus_o and_o the_o second_o thing_n concern_v keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o lyve_v without_o great_a sin_n he_o write_v of_o queen_n elizabeth_n no_o more_o confirm_v in_o grace_n then_o other_o prince_n for_o any_o thing_n he_o write_v or_o any_o man_n can_v conjecture_v in_o these_o word_n queen_n elizabeth_n never_o in_o her_o life_n commit_v helish_a crime_n therefore_o if_o she_o a_o princess_n and_o 73._o barlow●_n sup_v pag._n 73._o queen_n by_o this_o man_n testimony_n though_o i_o take_v it_o not_o as_o a_o revelation_n live_a in_o that_o dawngerous_a stafe_n of_o those_o of_o her_o rank_n by_o his_o judgement_n before_o never_o commit_v any_o sin_n deserue_v hell_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v or_o must_v grant_v that_o by_o his_o judgement_n other_o not_o in_o such_o case_n of_o dawnger_n and_o some_o of_o they_o also_o that_o be_v of_o that_o place_n may_v live_v without_o syns_n hellish_a or_o if_o they_o commit_v any_o in_o their_o life_n may_v do_v penance_n for_o they_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o be_v save_v and_o thus_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o i_o hope_v a_o full_a discharge_v of_o the_o scruple_n of_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n in_o their_o last_o question_n by_o their_o own_o learned_a doctor_n and_o professor_n chapter_n vi._n wherein_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o free_a will_n in_o man_n be_v prove_v by_o these_o english_a protestant_n writer_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o catholic_n entreate_v of_o the_o fall_n of_o 1._o council_n trid._n sess_v 6._o can_n 1._o man_n by_o the_o sin_v of_o adam_n have_v thus_o declare_v in_o this_o question_n man_n be_v so_o much_o the_o servant_n of_o sin_v and_o under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o death_n that_o not_o only_o the_o gentile_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n but_o neither_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n can_v be_v deliver_v or_o rise_v from_o thence_o although_o free_a will_n be_v not_o extinguish_v but_o weaken_v in_o power_n and_o decline_v in_o they_o and_o thus_o again_o the_o begin_v of_o sup_n can._n 5._o sup_n justification_n in_o they_o that_o be_v of_o discretion_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n by_o grace_n prevent_v that_o be_v from_o his_o call_n by_o the_o which_o when_o they_o have_v no_o merit_n they_o be_v call_v that_o they_o which_o be_v avert_v from_o god_n by_o syn_n by_o his_o excitatinge_v and_o helpe_v grace_n to_o convert_v they_o be_v dispose_v to_o their_o justification_n free_o assent_v to_o the_o same_o grace_n and_o cooperate_a so_o that_o god_n touch_v the_o hart_n of_o man_n by_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o man_n himself_o do_v nothing_o at_o all_o receive_v that_o inspiration_n when_o he_o may_v abject_a it_o neither_o not_o withstand_v without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n can_v move_v himself_o to_o justice_n before_o he_o by_o his_o free_a will_n whereupon_o in_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v say_v be_v you_o convert_v to_o i_o and_o i_o will_v be_v convert_v 1_o zachar._n 1_o to_o you_o was_z ●●e_z admonish_v of_o our_o freedom_n when_o we_o answer_v o_o lord_n convert_v we_o to_o thou_o and_o 84._o psal_n 84._o we●_n shall_v be_v convert_v we_o confess_v we_o be_v prevent_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n hither_o to_o that_o holy_a council_n which_o i_o have_v relate_v more_o at_o large_a in_o regard_n that_o many_o protestant_n have_v and_o i_o fear_v sometime_o voluntary_o mistake_v and_o report_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o this_o question_n and_o after_o this_o the_o same_o sacred_a council_n define_v against_o the_o 6._o council_n trid._n sup_v sess_v 6._o can_n 6._o enemy_n of_o free_a will_n in_o this_o manner_n if_o any_o m●n_z shall_v say_v that_o the_o free_a will_n of_o man_n after_o the_o sin_v of_o adam_n be_v lose_v and_o extinct_a let_v he_o be_v anathema_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o these_o english_a protestant_n writer_n will_v agree_v with_o this_o catholic_a sentence_n in_o which_o matter_n thus_o i_o argue_v where_o there_o be_v freedom_n in_o will_n from_o coaction_n and_o necessity_n there_o be_v free_a will_n but_o in_o man_n will_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n be_v this_o freedom_n therefore_o in_o he_o there_o be_v free_a
religion_n and_o perfection_n therein_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n grant_v they_o true_a penance_n and_o turn_v away_o his_o so_o much_o deserve_v vengeance_n from_o this_o nation_n and_o that_o as_o these_o man_n have_v much_o exexcee_v the_o infidel_n danes_n in_o offendinge_v so_o they_o may_v in_o some_o kind_n imitate_v they_o in_o satisfaction_n and_o repentinge_v for_o they_o themselves_o in_o this_o theatre_n be_v witness_n that_o their_o 392._o theat_v of_o gr_n britt_n pag._n 391._o 392._o great_a king_n canutus_n who_o i_o choose_v to_o exemplify_v in_o for_o satisfaction_n of_o such_o his_o syn_n go_v on_o pilgrimadge_n to_o rome_n to_o visit_v the_o sepulchre_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n build_v many_o church_n and_o abbey_n great_o reverence_v s._n benett_n who_o monasterye_n be_v so_o persecute_v he_o offer_v up_o his_o crown_n upon_o the_o martyr_n s._n edmund_n tomb_n most_o rich_a and_o royal_a jewel_n he_o give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o winchester_n whereof_o one_o be_v record_v to_o be_v a_o cross_a worth_n as_o much_o as_o the_o whole_a revenewe_n of_o england_n amount_v to_o in_o one_o year_n he_o set_v his_o crown_n on_o the_o head_n of_o the_o picture_n of_o our_o saviour_n on_o the_o cross_n at_o winchester_n never_o weareinge_v it_o more_o unto_o coventry_n he_o give_v the_o arm_n of_o saint_n augustine_n the_o doctor_n which_o he_o buy_v at_o papia_n in_o his_o return_n from_o rome_n and_o for_o which_o he_o pay_v a_o hundred_o talent_n of_o silver_n and_o one_o of_o gold_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n he_o do_v help_v to_o remove_v the_o body_n of_o saint_n alphegus_n at_o the_o translation_n of_o it_o from_o london_n to_o canterbury_n who_o the_o dane_n not_o withstand_v his_o archiepiscopall_a and_o sacred_a calle_n before_o have_v martyr_v at_o greenwich_n gunhilda_n daughter_n of_o this_o king_n and_o emma_n his_o wife_n be_v the_o first_o wife_n of_o 24._o pag._n 393._o n._n 24._o henry_n 3_o roman_a emperor_n her_o surpass_a beauty_n breed_v in_o the_o emperor_n jealousy_n of_o her_o incontinencye_n the_o matter_n to_o be_v try_v by_o combat_n her_o champion_n be_v her_o page_n but_o a_o youth_n bring_v out_o of_o england_n against_o agyantlike_a man_n but_o the_o page_n cut_v of_o his_o head_n the_o empress_n refuse_v the_o emperor_n bed_n and_o take_v the_o holy_a veil_n of_o a_o nun_n in_o flaunders_n where_o she_o spend_v the_o rest_n of_o her_o life_n o_o how_o happy_a have_v it_o be_v for_o k._n henry_n 8._o and_o his_o daughter_n q._n elizabeth_n themselves_o for_o we_o and_o all_o posterity_n in_o england_n if_o as_o in_o synninge_v they_o imitate_v and_o exceed_v the_o unbeleeve_a dane_n so_o in_o repent_v and_o satisfaction_n they_o have_v be_v imitator_n of_o their_o piety_n chapter_n viii_o wherein_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o distinction_n between_o mortal_a and_o venial_a syn_n be_v prove_v by_o these_o protestant_a writer_n in_o this_o question_n thus_o i_o brief_o make_v demonstration_n for_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n by_o these_o protestant_n all_o man_n that_o grant_v and_o do_v not_o deny_v this_o difference_n of_o syn_n some_o to_o be_v mortal_a deprive_v of_o grace_n other_o venial_a not_o depryve_v of_o it_o but_o consist_v with_o it_o do_v grant_v this_o distinction_n and_o do_v or_o aught_o to_o agree_v with_o catholic_n therein_o but_o these_o english_a protestant_n doctor_n and_o writer_n do_v thus_o therefore_o they_o do_v or_o aught_o to_o agree_v with_o catholic_n therein_o the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a for_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n may_v never_o without_o that_o great_a horrible_a offence_n of_o denial_n of_o a_o man_n faith_n be_v deny_v so_o they_o ought_v according_a to_o the_o obligation_n and_o duty_n of_o some_o time_n profess_v our_o faith_n be_v also_o some_o time_n confess_v but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o mayor_n which_o be_v sufficient_a in_o this_o argument_n be_v express_o affirm_v and_o the_o minor_a thus_o prove_v first_o the_o public_a protestant_a conference_n at_o 41._o conference_n pag._n 41._o hampton_n court_n assure_v we_o thus_o among_o syn_n some_o be_v grevous_a or_o mortal_a which_o deprive_v of_o grace_n other_o venial_a or_o which_o do_v consist_v with_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v in_o this_o question_n and_o d._n feild_n entreateinge_v of_o this_o matter_n write_v 116._o field_n pag._n 116._o thus_o in_o the_o name_n general_o of_o protestant_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o distinction_n of_o venial_a and_o mortal_a syn_n but_o do_v think_v that_o some_o syn_n be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v mortal_a and_o some_o venial_a some_o do_v exclude_v grace_n out_o of_o that_o man_n in_o which_o they_o be_v find_v and_o so_o leave_v he_o in_o a_o state_n wherein_o he_o have_v nothing_o in_o himself_o that_o can_v or_o will_v procure_v he_o pardon_v other_o do_v not_o so_o far_o prevail_v as_o to_o banish_v grace_n 56._o covell_a def_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 56._o d._n covell_n dispute_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o english_a puritan_n protestant_n use_v these_o word_n your_o three_o false_a conclusion_n seem_v to_o establish_v a_o threefold_a error_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o church_n that_o be_v account_v christian_n first_o that_o all_o sin_v be_v but_o one_o sin_v second_o that_o all_o syn_n be_v equal_a three_o that_o all_o syn_n be_v unite_v the_o first_o make_v no_o division_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o sin_v the_o second_o no_o distinction_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o sin_v and_o the_o three_o no_o difference_n in_o commit_v sin_n against_o these_o we_o say_v and_o we_o hope_v warrant_v by_o truth_n that_o syn_n be_v of_o diverse_a kind_n of_o diverse_a degree_n of_o diverse_a nature_n from_o which_o thus_o i_o argue_v again_o whatsoever_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o church_n account_v christian_n be_v erroneous_a and_o in_o the_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v warrant_v by_o truth_n be_v not_o true_a but_o that_o protestant_a doctrine_n which_o deni_v the_o diverse_a kind_n degree_n and_o nature_n of_o syn_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_a for_o true_a doctrine_n can_v be_v contrary_a to_o all_o christian_a church_n to_o truth_n nor_o can_v be_v erroneous_a opposite_a to_o truth_n the_o minor_a be_v express_o in_o plain_a word_n prove_v by_o d._n covell_n before_o who_o make_v it_o so_o odious_a that_o in_o his_o opinion_n none_o account_v or_o to_o be_v account_v a_o christian_a will_v defend_v it_o and_o the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o distinction_n of_o syn_n thus_o he_o confirm_v in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o be_v ●_o foot_n 58._o covell_a def_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 57_o 58._o and_o a_o rod_n wide_a and_o therefore_o the_o law_n that_o forbid_v but_o one_o thing_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v forbid_v three_o thing_n as_o christ_n expownd_v it_o anger_n to_o thy_o brother_n to_o call_v he_o fool_n to_o offer_v he_o violence_n these_o have_v everye_o one_o as_o their_o several_a degree_n so_o their_o several_a punishment_n this_o heresy_n than_o we_o leave_v to_o his_o first_o author_n jovinian_a and_o the_o rest_n from_o which_o sentence_n thus_o i_o argue_v again_o nothing_o that_o be_v heresy_n and_o be_v for_o such_o condemn_v in_o the_o heretic_n jovinian_a and_o other_o for_o such_o can_v be_v true_a doctrine_n but_o this_o protestant_n puritan_n doctrine_n here_o confute_v by_o d._n covell_n in_o his_o judgement_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v true_a the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a for_o true_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n be_v contrary_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v in_o the_o last_o protestant_n citation_n last_o i_o argue_v thus_o that_o doctrine_n which_o have_v scandalize_v all_o church_n and_o leave_v many_o follower_n of_o that_o religion_n wherein_o it_o be_v teach_v ill_o satisfy_v can_v be_v true_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o diverse_a protestant_n in_o this_o question_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v true_a the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a for_o truth_n can_v scandalize_v all_o church_n nor_o leave_v the_o professor_n ill_o satisfy_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o protestant_a relator_n of_o religion_n who_o entreat_v of_o this_o 48._o relation_n of_o religion_n cap._n 48._o and_o other_o such_o protestant_a paradox_n write_v thus_o touch_v the_o eternal_a decree_n of_o god_n the_o quality_n of_o man_n nature_n the_o use_n of_o work_n some_o of_o their_o chief_a author_n have_v scandalize_v all_o other_o church_n withal_o yea_o and_o many_o of_o their_o own_o to_o rest_v very_o ill_o satisfy_v therefore_o the_o former_a catholic_a doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n be_v true_a and_o orthodox_n even_o by_o these_o protestant_n which_o shall_v suffice_v in_o this_o question_n perhaps_o not_o so_o general_o receive_v
honour_n and_o after_o he_o have_v thus_o define_v 59_o pag._n 58._o 59_o or_o describe_v they_o he_o do_v also_o divide_v they_o in_o this_o order_n and_o in_o these_o word_n all_o ceremony_n may_v be_v divide_v thus_o some_o be_v for_o iustification_n such_o as_o the_o law_n command_v whereby_o the_o observer_n be_v make_v more_o purify_v and_o more_o holy_a in_o place_n whereof_o afterward_o succeed_v those_o that_o be_v for_o ornament_n and_o to_o signify_v such_o virtue_n as_o be_v requisite_a in_o those_o party_n that_o right_o use_v they_o second_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o author_n some_o be_v ordinance_n of_o nature_n as_o to_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n to_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n to_o how_o the_o knee_n to_o knock_v the_o breast_n and_o such_o like_a when_o we_o pray_v thing_n use_v in_o their_o devotion_n by_o the_o heathen_n themselves_o other_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n himself_o some_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n that_o succeed_v in_o their_o place_n three_o some_o in_o the_o part_n of_o the_o immediate_a worship_n as_o sacrifice_v prayer_n adoration_n and_o suchlike_a some_o only_a dispose_n as_o fast_v austere_a live_n some_o be_v only_a instrument_n as_o church_n altar_n chalice_n and_o all_o those_o which_o religeous_o be_v separate_v serve_v only_o to_o make_v the_o devotion_n more_o solemn_a and_o that_o solemnity_n to_o be_v more_o holy_a four_o of_o these_o some_o respect_v parson_n some_o time_n some_o other_o concern_v place_n all_o which_o concurringe_n in_o a_o dyvine_a worship_n be_v with_o ceremony_n by_o separation_n make_v sacred_a and_o so_o fit_a to_o serve_v unto_o holy_a use_n last_o some_o be_v particular_a some_o more_o general_a and_o universal_a and_o have_v thus_o entreat_v 65._o covell_n supr_fw-la pag._n 65._o of_o the_o original_n description_n and_o division_n of_o ceremony_n he_o write_v further_a of_o their_o necessity_n in_o this_o manner_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v a_o sure_a preserver_n of_o religion_n then_o to_o keep_v it_o from_o contempt_n a_o thing_n not_o easy_o do_v where_o it_o be_v leave_v destitute_a and_o deprive_v of_o holy_a ceremony_n for_o the_o principal_a excellency_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v spiritual_a be_v not_o easy_o observe_v of_o the_o greatet_fw-la number_n which_o be_v carnal_a and_o therefore_o we_o propownde_v not_o naked_a mysterye_n but_o clothe_v they_o that_o these_o offer_v to_o the_o sense_n a_o certain_a majesty_n may_v be_v receive_v of_o the_o mind_n with_o a_o great_a reverence_n and_o therefore_o some_o of_o the_o father_n account_v they_o as_o the_o shell_n to_o the_o kernel_n have_v say_v that_o no_o religion_n either_o true_a or_o false_a be_v able_a to_o consist_v without_o they_o hitherto_o the_o word_n of_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n from_o which_o i_o first_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n whatsoever_o religion_n omit_v and_o neglect_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v so_o necessary_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o true_a religion_n that_o it_o can_v consist_v without_o they_o can_v be_v the_o true_a religion_n but_o the_o english_a protestant_a religion_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v true_a the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o a_o other_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o the_o second_o proposition_n be_v likewise_o manifest_a for_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n neither_o esteem_n so_o of_o ceremony_n as_o this_o doctor_n tell_v we_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v account_v of_o neither_o retain_v such_o ceremony_n as_o his_o division_n comprehend_v as_o be_v evident_a therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v true_a and_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o holy_a otherwise_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o true_a church_n or_o ceremony_n practise_v and_o consequent_o no_o true_a religion_n by_o this_o doctor_n before_o again_o suppose_v as_o before_o be_v grant_v by_o these_o protestant_n that_o either_o their_o church_n religion_n and_o ceremony_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n religion_n and_o ceremony_n be_v true_a i_o argue_v thus_o no_o church_n or_o religion_n which_o omit_v and_o deny_v those_o holy_a ceremony_n which_o be_v part_n of_o the_o immediate_a worship_n and_o the_o instrument_n thereof_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o religion_n but_o contrariwise_o that_o which_o embrace_v and_o allow_v they_o but_o the_o protestant_a english_a church_n omit_v and_o deni_v ceremony_n part_n of_o the_o immediate_a worship_n and_o the_o instrument_n thereof_o that_o be_v sacrifice_n altar_n etc._n etc._n which_o d._n covell_n tell_v we_o before_o to_o be_v such_o and_o the_o roman_a church_n embrace_v and_o allow_v they_o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o ceremony_n and_o not_o the_o protestant_n be_v true_a both_o the_o proposition_n be_v manifest_a therefore_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v holy_a reverend_a etc._n etc._n otherwise_o no_o true_a church_n and_o religion_n can_v have_v they_o or_o be_v such_o three_o i_o argue_v thus_o the_o true_a church_n have_v power_n to_o decree_v rite_n or_o ceremony_n and_o consequent_o to_o bind_v other_o to_o receive_v they_o and_o not_o reject_v they_o but_o by_o 2._o part._n 1._o cap._n 2._o the_o grant_n of_o protestant_n in_o the_o first_o part_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n when_o it_o ordain_v all_o ceremony_n now_o use_v in_o it_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v use_v and_o bind_v all_o man_n to_o receive_v they_o and_o so_o be_v consequent_o holy_a decent_a reverend_a etc._n etc._n the_o mayor_n proposition_n consist_v of_o the_o 20._o articul_fw-la relig._n 20._o word_n of_o their_o allow_a article_n before_o cite_v and_o the_o second_o proposition_n large_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n as_o i_o have_v cite_v and_o by_o d._n covells_n citation_n it_o will_v have_v be_v account_v 65._o covell_n modest_a examinat_fw-la pag._n 64._o 65._o heresy_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n to_o have_v be_v stiff_o opposite_a in_o this_o kind_n therefore_o protestant_n may_v not_o deny_v they_o under_o such_o peril_n in_o his_o judgement_n further_o thus_o i_o argue_v those_o which_o be_v the_o ceremony_n of_o that_o church_n which_o the_o english_a protestant_n acknowledge_v for_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o holy_a decent_a reverend_a &c_n &c_n but_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o lord_n protestant_n archbishop_n and_o d._n field_n and_o other_o true_a church_n the_o present_a greek_a church_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o holy_a decent_a etc._n etc._n the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_o true_a out_o of_o their_o article_n before_o and_o their_o writer_n sup_n articul_fw-la 20._o sup_n against_o the_o puritan_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o protestant_a relator_n of_o religion_n who_o speak_v of_o they_o of_o the_o present_a greek_a 54._o relation_n cap._n 53._o or_o cap._n 54._o church_n write_v thus_o with_o rome_n they_o concur_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o general_o in_o the_o service_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o pray_v to_o saint_n in_o auricular_a confession_n in_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o these_o without_o any_o or_o with_o no_o material_a difference_n they_o hold_v purgatory_n also_o and_o worship_v of_o picture_n for_o the_o form_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o much_o sup_n cap._n 55._o sup_n resemble_v the_o latin_n in_o crosseing_n they_o be_v very_o plentiful_a their_o liturgy_n be_v the_o same_o that_o in_o the_o old_a time_n namely_o s._n basils_n s._n chrisostomes_n and_o s._n gregorye_n 54._o cap._n 53._o or_o 54._o translate_v without_o any_o bend_n of_o they_o to_o that_o change_n of_o languadge_a which_o their_o tongue_n have_v suffer_v in_o sum_n all_o those_o opinion_n which_o grow_v into_o the_o church_n before_o that_o separation_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n and_o all_o those_o ceremony_n which_o be_v common_a unto_o both_o they_o still_o retain_v as_o their_o crosseing_n and_o taper_n with_o other_o thus_o they_o have_v prove_v not_o only_o that_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n agree_v with_o or_o be_v the_o same_o with_o those_o of_o that_o church_n which_o they_o teach_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o to_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o primatyve_a church_n in_o the_o mass_n of_o s._n basile_n s._n chrisostome_n and_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a pope_n of_o rome_n the_o last_o that_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o that_o mass_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o use_v and_o be_v also_o use_v among_o the_o grecian_n themselves_o be_v translate_v into_o greek_a as_o this_o relator_n wittness_v and_o this_o will_n most_o plain_o further_a appear_v in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o greek_n agree_v with_o the_o
latin_n and_o roman_a church_n in_o all_o opinion_n and_o ceremony_n use_v before_o their_o separation_n for_o to_o make_v manifest_a the_o antiquity_n of_o these_o holy_a ceremony_n by_o that_o his_o prescribe_a time_n of_o separation_n first_o d._n willet_n 169._o willet_n antil_n pag._n 169._o tell_v we_o it_o be_v before_o the_o write_n of_o the_o tripartite_a history_n which_o he_o cit_v to_o that_o end_n and_o be_v twelve_o hundred_o of_o year_n since_o d._n downame_n be_v of_o the_o like_a opinion_n antichrist_n downame_n book_n of_o antichrist_n denownce_v it_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n before_o they_o take_v any_o exception_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n d._n feild_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n all_o of_o they_o assign_v 271._o feild_n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o pag._n 62._o sutcliff_n subvor_n pag._n 89_o &_o epist_n dedicat_fw-la willet_n antilog_n pag._n 263._o 271._o it_o long_o before_o the_o 600._o year_n which_o d._n sutcliffe_n d._n willet_n and_o other_o allow_v for_o a_o unspotted_a time_n in_o religion_n and_o ceremony_n thereof_o and_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o to_o their_o ignorant_a reader_n and_o auditor_n they_o will_v seem_v to_o reprehend_v themselves_o in_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o rule_n in_o such_o cause_n have_v most_o highe_o and_o undenieable_o confirm_v and_o justify_v again_o i_o argue_v thus_o from_o the_o relator_n himself_o those_o ceremony_n which_o breed_v order_n in_o the_o church_n avoid_v scandal_n give_v propagation_n unto_o religion_n breed_v unity_n and_o do_v engender_v quicken_v increase_n and_o nourish_v the_o inward_a reverence_n respect_n and_o devotion_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o sovereign_a majesty_n and_o power_n and_o of_o themselves_o be_v decent_a reverend_a and_o significant_a be_v to_o be_v allow_v retain_v and_o adjudge_v such_o as_o become_v true_a religion_n but_o the_o present_a ceremony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n be_v such_o therefore_o to_o be_v allow_v retain_v and_o adjudge_v for_o decent_a holy_a reverend_a etc._n etc._n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v without_o all_o question_n true_a and_o more_o than_o the_o protestant_n require_v in_o this_o case_n the_o minor_a be_v 47._o relation_n of_o religion_n cap._n 47._o prove_v by_o this_o relator_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o in_o these_o word_n for_o order_v in_o the_o world_n for_o quiet_a in_o the_o church_n for_o avoid_v of_o scandal_n for_o propagatinge_v and_o increase_n of_o what_o great_a power_n that_o unity_n be_v which_o proceed_v from_o authority_n the_o papacy_n may_v teach_v and_o again_o the_o outward_a state_n and_o glory_n of_o their_o service_n do_v engender_v 6._o relation_n sup_n cap._n 6._o quicken_v increase_n and_o nourish_v the_o inward_a reverence_n respect_n and_o devotion_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o sovereign_a majesty_n and_o power_n their_o outward_a gesture_n be_v decent_a 5._o cap._n 5._o reverend_a and_o significant_a then_o these_o holy_a ceremony_n have_v so_o great_a allowance_n from_o our_o enemy_n themselves_o for_o their_o decency_n reverence_n signification_n virtue_n and_o antiquity_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o embrace_v preserve_v and_o exercise_v and_o may_v not_o be_v term_v offensyve_a ceremony_n by_o that_o or_o any_o protestant_n and_o to_o exemplify_v particular_o in_o those_o ceremony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v most_o disallow_v of_o our_o english_a protestant_n i_o argue_v thus_o those_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n of_o rome_n when_o it_o be_v in_o her_o best_a and_o florishinge_v state_n a_o rule_n to_o all_o &c._n &c._n aught_o or_o may_v still_o be_v practise_v and_o observe_v but_o those_o ceremony_n which_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n now_o observe_v and_o be_v so_o much_o dislike_v by_o many_o english_a protestant_n be_v such_o therefore_o they_o ought_v or_o may_v still_o to_o be_v use_v and_o with_o reverence_n practise_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v often_o grant_v before_o 1562._o articul_fw-la of_o relig._n 20._o an._n 1562._o by_o these_o protestant_n and_o thus_o define_v in_o the_o 20._o article_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o decree_n rite_n or_o ceremony_n and_o authority_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o whether_o these_o ceremony_n belong_v to_o faith_n or_o manner_n be_v practise_v or_o ordain_v by_o our_o mother_n church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o governor_n thereof_o when_o by_o all_o confession_n it_o be_v holy_a and_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v religeous_o to_o be_v embrace_v and_o receive_v the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o man_n m._n hull_n in_o his_o work_n entitle_v 86._o hull_n rome_n polecy_n pag_n 82._o 13._o 83._o 84._o 85._o 86._o rome_n polecy_n thus_o recompt_v they_o lent_n embringe_v day_n friday_n altar_n linen_n albes_fw-la corporal_n priest_n robe_n the_o feast_n of_o s._n peter_n chain_n the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n the_o exaltation_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o saint_n fastinge_a even_n annoyntinge_v the_o sick_a anoint_v bishop_n crossinge_v with_o chrism_n in_o baptism_n saint_n shrine_n hymn_n pax_n to_o be_v carry_v about_o to_o be_v kiss_v the_o paschal_n tapar_n on_o easter_n even_o to_o be_v hallow_v organ_n and_o church_n instrument_n singe_a of_o psalm_n in_o order_n with_o antiphones_n mass_n for_o the_o dead_a canonical_a hour_n procession_n procession_n to_o go_v round_o about_o the_o church_n every_o sunday_n hitherto_o the_o word_n of_o this_o protestant_a writer_n other_o of_o they_o as_o d._n morton_n d._n covell_n m._n ormerod_n etc._n morton_n apol._n part_n 2._o pag._n 141._o covell_n examinat_fw-la ormerod_n pick_v parit_fw-la g._n 2._o 1._o 3._o 4._o theat_v of_o gr_n britan._n pag._n 298._o 299._o 351._o etc._n etc._n do_v add_v holy_a water_n holy_a font_n interrogatory_n in_o baptism_n dedication_n of_o church_n introyte_v of_o mass_n wafer_n cake_n to_o be_v consecrate_v in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la the_o ring_n in_o marriage_n and_o other_o be_v add_v by_o their_o theatre_n before_o and_o other_o protestant_n and_o they_o tell_v we_o further_o the_o name_n of_o those_o sacred_a pope_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n that_o use_v approve_a constitute_v or_o confirm_v unto_o we_o these_o sacred_a ceremony_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n when_o it_o true_o be_v by_o his_o majesty_n grant_n in_o her_o best_a estate_n and_o mother_n church_n to_o prescribe_v unto_o other_o provincial_a parlam_n king_n speech_n in_o parlam_n church_n her_o daughter_n and_o as_o they_o then_o be_v and_o now_o shall_v be_v her_o obedient_a child_n and_o they_o name_v they_o as_o follow_v telesphorus_n calixtus_n stephanus_n silvester_n sixtus_n sup_v hull_n sup_v pag._n 82._o 13._o 83._o 84._o 85._o 86._o morton_n covell_n orme_a sup_v vigilius_n honorius_n bonifacius_n sergius_n leo_n innocentius_n zozimus_n vitellian_a celestine_n pelagius_n vrbanus_n agapitus_n damasus_n higinius_n pius_n celestinus_fw-la alexander_n all_o which_o rule_v the_o church_n and_o live_v long_o before_o protestant_n exception_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 75._o k._n in_o parlam_n king_n in_o confer_v at_o hampton_n pag._n 75._o and_o when_o it_o be_v in_o her_o flourish_n and_o best_a estate_n such_o as_o we_o may_v not_o depart_v from_o it_o by_o his_o regal_a sentence_n of_o what_o higthest_n and_o command_a authority_n over_o other_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o those_o unspotted_a day_n of_o christianity_n have_v be_v prove_v before_o to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o d._n covell_n do_v not_o only_o tell_v we_o that_o metropolitanes_n archbishop_n 111._o covell_n modest_a exam_fw-la pag._n 111._o etc._n etc._n come_v from_o thence_o and_o who_o to_o who_o shall_v be_v obedient_a and_o superior_a and_o be_v so_o use_v before_o the_o first_o general_a council_n to_o testify_v that_o this_o supreamacie_n be_v from_o christ_n immediate_o and_o not_o from_o counsel_n but_o he_o further_o speak_v thus_o either_o euaristus_n bishop_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n in_o the_o 162_o covell_n supr_fw-la pag._n 162_o year_n 112_o or_o as_o some_o say_v dyonisius_n first_o assign_v the_o precinct_n to_o every_o parish_n and_o appoint_v to_o each_o presbyter_n a_o certain_a compass_n whereof_o himself_o shall_v take_v charge_n alone_o hitherto_o his_o word_n then_o if_o this_o supreme_a and_o bind_a authority_n be_v in_o that_o chaste_a and_o florishinge_v time_n of_o true_a religion_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o priest_n bishop_n archbishop_n metropolitanes_n &c._n &c._n to_o appoint_v constitute_v and_o decree_n not_o only_o what_o ceremony_n and_o solemnity_n shall_v be_v use_v in_o all_o church_n but_o to_o rate_v and_o proportion_n out_o what_o power_n privilege_n and_o jurisdiction_n all_o pastor_n prelate_n and_o spiritual_a ruler_n shall_v enjoy_v
protestant_n in_o the_o last_o chapter_n yet_o to_o give_v it_o a_o further_a though_o needle_n confirmation_n i_o prove_v it_o again_o in_o this_o order_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n external_a and_o public_a that_o doctrine_n which_o that_o church_n which_o be_v esteem_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n teach_v be_v to_o be_v allow_v but_o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n bless_a body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v over_o public_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v so_o to_o be_v allow_v the_o first_o proposition_n be_v often_o grant_v before_o and_o the_o second_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n opinion_n and_o practice_n both_o at_o this_o present_a and_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primative_a day_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o protestant_a relator_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o holy_a ceremony_n his_o word_n to_o make_v 54._o relation_n cap._n 53._o or_o c._n 54._o a_o new_a repetition_n of_o that_o church_n doctrine_n be_v these_o with_o rome_n they_o concur_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o general_o in_o the_o service_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o pray_v to_o saint_n in_o auricular_a confession_n in_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o these_o without_o any_o or_o with_o no_o material_a difference_n they_o hold_v purgatory_n also_o and_o worship_v of_o picture_n for_o the_o form_n and_o 55._o cap._n 55._o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o much_o resemble_v the_o latin_n in_o crosseing_n they_o be_v very_o plentiful_a in_o sum_n sup_n relat._n of_o relig_n c._n 53._o or_o 54_o sup_n all_o those_o opinion_n which_o grow_v into_o the_o church_n before_o that_o separation_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n and_o all_o those_o ceremony_n which_o be_v common_a unto_o both_o they_o still_o retain_v then_o this_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o this_o public_a sacrifice_n be_v not_o only_o the_o use_n of_o these_o two_o church_n now_o but_o before_o their_o separation_n which_o these_o protestant_n in_o that_o place_n have_v tell_v we_o sup_n cap._n 11._o sup_n to_o have_v beerie_a 1200._o year_n ago_o must_v still_o with_o reverence_n be_v observe_v which_o this_o protestant_a relator_n shall_v here_o confirm_v again_o 54._o relat._n sup_v cap._n 53._o or_o 54._o speak_v of_o the_o present_a greek_a church_n in_o these_o word_n their_o liturgy_n be_v the_o same_o that_o in_o the_o old_a time_n namely_o s._n basils_n s._n chrisostomes_n and_o s._n gregory_n which_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o use_v translate_v without_o any_o bend_n they_o to_o that_o change_n of_o language_n which_o their_o tongue_n have_v suffer_v m._n middleton_n also_o 81._o middleton_n papistoma_v pag._n 51._o morton_n apol._n part_n 2._o pag._n 81._o tell_v we_o of_o the_o mass_n of_o basile_n chrisostome_n and_o epiphanius_n and_o that_o in_o they_o the_o dead_a be_v pray_v for_o d._n morton_n go_v high_a to_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n cite_v and_o allow_v not_o only_o the_o mass_n of_o s._n basile_n and_o s._n chrisostome_n but_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n himself_o wherefore_o i_o hope_v he_o and_o other_o will_v be_v the_o better_o please_v to_o accept_v the_o censure_n of_o hieremias_n the_o constantinopolitan_a patriarch_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v supreme_a in_o that_o church_n utter_v in_o these_o word_n the_o holy_a mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n censur_n hierem._n in_o censur_n institute_v of_o christ_n in_o memory_n and_o commendation_n of_o all_o his_o mercy_n and_o humility_n sustain_v for_o our_o sake_n saint_n james_n the_o apostle_n call_v our_o lord_n brother_n first_o reduce_v into_o order_n that_o liturgy_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v so_o instruct_v of_o christ_n to_o do_v it_o in_o all_o part_n of_o that_o holy_a sacrifice_n nothing_o else_o be_v handle_v but_o a_o universal_a order_n of_o thing_n which_o our_o saviour_n undertake_v for_o our_o redemption_n how_o these_o primative_a mass_n liturgy_n or_o form_n of_o the_o b._n sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o all_o question_n and_o article_n of_o religion_n agree_v with_o that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o practise_v from_o s._n gregory_n as_o these_o man_n before_o allow_v and_o other_o write_v from_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n be_v apparent_a in_o those_o liturgy_n and_o mass_n and_o too_o long_o to_o be_v cite_v in_o this_o place_n and_o from_o hence_o thus_o i_o argue_v again_o that_o doctrine_n and_o public_a practice_n of_o sacrifice_n or_o other_o which_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n practise_v by_o his_o apostle_n and_o such_o holy_a saint_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o saint_n basile_n s._n chrisostome_n s._n epiphanius_n and_o s._n gregory_n be_v may_v and_o ought_v still_o to_o be_v observe_v keep_v and_o use_v but_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o our_o public_a church_n sacrifice_n or_o mass_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o may_v and_o aught_o still_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o use_v the_o first_o proposition_n be_v most_o evident_o true_a and_o can_v be_v deny_v by_o any_o true_a christian_a and_o the_o minor_a be_v before_o prove_v in_o these_o last_o protestant_n allow_a citation_n and_o may_v further_o be_v confirm_v by_o these_o protestant_a writer_n d._n sutcl●ffe_n write_v thus_o we_o read_v in_o ignatius_n this_o phrase_n offer_v and_o sacrificium_fw-la 32._o sutcliff_n subu_fw-fr pag._n 32._o immolare_fw-la to_o offer_v and_o immolate_a sacrifice_n and_o like_a phrase_n in_o irenaeus_n cyprian_n tertullian_n and_o martialis_n who_o mention_v also_o altar_n and_o these_o word_n and_o the_o thing_n true_o signify_v by_o they_o altar_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v in_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o tongue_n so_o unseperable_o join_v and_o knit_v together_o that_o d._n morton_n do_v thus_o acknowledge_v we_o can_v dislike_v the_o sentence_n 1_o morton_n app._n pag._n 162._o l._n 2._o cap._n 6._o sect._n 1_o concern_v the_o mutual_a relation_n and_o dependence_n between_o a_o altar_n and_o sacrifice_n but_o grant_v that_o altar_n do_v as_o natural_o and_o necessary_o infer_v a_o sacrifice_n as_o a_o shrine_n do_v a_o saint_n a_o father_n a_o son_n and_o again_o it_o be_v true_o say_v sacrifice_n and_o preisthood_n be_v relative_n then_o for_o altar_n he_o have_v hard_o before_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o consequent_o mass_n the_o christian_a sacrifice_n be_v then_o for_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v and_o his_o protestant_a bishop_n in_o their_o late_a theatre_n will_v put_v he_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o from_o the_o beginning_a of_o christianity_n even_o in_o england_n such_o altar_n for_o sacrifice_n be_v use_v of_o the_o christian_n their_o word_n be_v these_o it_o be_v report_v that_o 204._o theatre_n of_o great_a brit._n pag._n 205._o n._n 12._o pag._n 204._o patrick_n the_o irish_a apostle_n and_o canonize_a saint_n long_o before_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n lucius_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o many_o place_n of_o wales_n and_o also_o that_o ninianus_n bernicius_fw-la of_o the_o race_n of_o the_o british_a prince_n convert_v the_o pict_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o effect_n also_o the_o say_n of_o s._n john_n chrisostome_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n enforce_v and_o among_o land_n express_o name_v this_o our_o britain_n who_o inhabitant_n say_v he_o have_v also_o consent_v to_o the_o word_n which_o be_v plant_v in_o every_o heart_n in_o honour_n whereof_o they_o have_v erect_v their_o temple_n and_o altar_n thus_o in_o the_o britain_n time_n that_o s._n augustine_n bring_v in_o altar_n mass_n and_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o protestant_n in_o other_o place_n and_o the_o theatre_n itself_o set_v this_o for_o one_o of_o the_o question_n of_o s._n augustine_n to_o s._n gregory_n gift_n 330._o theat_n pag._n 330._o offer_v on_o the_o altar_n how_o to_o be_v distribute_v ask_v by_o augustine_n of_o pope_n gregory_n and_o thus_o they_o write_v of_o king_n redwald_n after_o baptism_n returninge_v to_o idolatry_n 333._o pag._n 333._o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o temple_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o old_a samaritan_o he_o erect_v a_o altar_n for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o other_o little_a altar_n for_o burn_a sacrifice_n which_o stand_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o beda_n himself_o and_o long_o before_o again_o in_o the_o britain_n time_n they_o tell_v we_o of_o priest_n stain_v stand_a at_o the_o altar_n and_o again_o in_o 317._o pag._n 291._o pag._n 317._o gildas_n time_n 1200._o year_n since_o oath_n take_v upon_o the_o altar_n make_v of_o stome_n and_o to_o secure_v d._n morton_n what_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v upon_o those_o altar_n be_v they_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o this_o primative_a time_n in_o
with_o precept_n as_o those_o heretic_n call_v apostolici_fw-la other_o esteem_v they_o as_o thing_n indifferent_a other_o as_o thing_n forbid_v which_o error_n be_v accuse_v by_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n to_o be_v a_o opinion_n of_o our_o church_n there_o be_v none_o of_o any_o sound_a judgement_n in_o our_o church_n which_o do_v not_o think_v that_o willing_a poverty_n humble_a obedience_n and_o true_a chastity_n be_v thing_n very_o commendable_a and_o do_v bring_v with_o they_o great_a advantadge_n to_o the_o true_a perfection_n of_o a_o christian_a life_n by_o these_o we_o do_v more_o than_o without_o these_o we_o shall_v then_o these_o man_n grant_v the_o doctrine_n and_o never_o practise_v the_o use_n of_o it_o from_o whence_o this_o advantadge_n to_o true_a perfection_n be_v bring_v be_v in_o a_o practical_a error_n in_o this_o point_n and_o aught_o to_o reform_v themselves_o if_o any_o man_n will_v excuse_v their_o omit_v of_o it_o he_o must_v needs_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v either_o because_o they_o will_v not_o or_o be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v it_o if_o it_o only_o proceed_v of_o willfullnes_n they_o be_v general_o to_o be_v reprove_v of_o wilful_a obstinacy_n and_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n universal_o refuse_v or_o resist_v such_o holy_a motion_n inspiration_n and_o grace_n if_o they_o say_v it_o proceed_v from_o want_n of_o grace_n spiritual_a power_n and_o assistance_n to_o effect_v it_o they_o plain_o prove_v and_o thereby_o acknowledge_v themselves_o and_o their_o religion_n to_o be_v graceless_a and_o not_o of_o god_n not_o have_v that_o hability_n and_o strengthe_n in_o any_o one_o company_n or_o society_n of_o man_n or_o woman_n among_o they_o in_o so_o long_a time_n to_o embrace_v and_o practice_n that_o which_o so_o profit_v to_o perfection_n and_o as_o strong_o grant_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o for_o true_a wherein_o that_o grace_n have_v be_v give_v to_o thousand_o of_o society_n to_o profess_v to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o perpetual_a vow_a chastity_n which_o have_v not_o be_v bestow_v one_o any_o one_o fraternity_n in_o their_o religion_n and_o thereby_o demonstrate_v to_o the_o world_n that_o those_o catholic_a priest_n of_o our_o nation_n who_o they_o persecute_v as_o enemy_n to_o god_n be_v in_o this_o great_a favour_n and_o grace_n with_o he_o in_o perform_v that_o perfect_a estate_n of_o continency_n which_o our_o adversary_n open_o confess_v they_o can_v do_v which_o we_o be_v so_o fart_n from_o acknowledge_v in_o we_o that_o in_o great_a multitude_n we_o will_v solemn_o swear_v we_o true_o perform_v it_o and_o no_o man_n understand_v the_o severe_a canon_n of_o catholic_a religion_n for_o such_o offender_n the_o great_a reverence_n we_o give_v to_o that_o most_o bless_a sacrifice_n which_o we_o daily_o offer_v and_o what_o innocence_n of_o life_n at_o the_o jest_n to_o be_v free_a from_o all_o carnal_a and_o other_o mortal_a sin_n we_o require_v unto_o it_o and_o the_o minister_a of_o all_o other_o sacrament_n continual_o practise_v by_o we_o can_v condemn_v our_o order_n in_o this_o matter_n further_o in_o this_o question_n i_o argue_v thus_o that_o which_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o church_n within_o the_o first_o 400._o year_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o to_o be_v observe_v but_o the_o vow_n of_o continency_n be_v then_o decree_v to_o be_v annex_v to_o holy_a order_n therefore_o still_o so_o to_o be_v observe_v the_o mayor_n be_v allow_v before_o and_o the_o minor_a prove_v by_o m._n perkins_n in_o these_o word_n continentiae_fw-la votum_fw-la necessarium_fw-la &_o 192._o perk_n problem_n pag._n 192._o perpetuum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o vow_n of_o continency_n necessary_a and_o perpetual_a seem_v first_o to_o have_v be_v decree_v in_o the_o west_n church_n about_o 380._o year_n after_o christ_n trae_o it_o be_v receive_v before_o but_o by_o the_o private_a devotion_n of_o some_o not_o by_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o acknowledge_v then_o only_o to_o be_v decree_v though_o use_v before_o and_o this_o in_o the_o west_n church_n it_o suffice_v for_o this_o purpose_n and_o be_v obligatorie_n to_o protestant_n both_o confess_v that_o a_o time_n of_o truth_n the_o roman_a church_n then_o to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o mother_n unto_o other_o and_o themselves_o under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o that_o western_a &_o roman_a church_n and_o custom_n be_v not_o usual_o decree_v but_o upon_o transgression_n of_o they_o but_o m._n middleton_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o s._n ●piphanius_n a_o holy_a saint_n and_o bless_a bishop_n of_o greece_n write_v of_o such_o decree_n and_o canon_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n both_o to_o have_v be_v extant_a and_o practise_v long_o before_o that_o time_n and_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n as_o his_o word_n tradition_n without_o limitation_n argue_v 140._o epiphan_n l._n 1._o to_o 2._o contra_fw-la her_n cathari_n apud_fw-la middleton_n papistom_n pag._n 139._o 140._o thus_o he_o be_v cite_v by_o he_o write_v of_o the_o cathari_n heretic_n those_o tradition_n which_o be_v deliver_v peculiar_o for_o the_o clergy_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o supereminencie_n in_o celebration_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n these_o heretic_n will_v have_v all_o man_n tie_v unto_o when_o they_o do_v hear_v that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v unreprovable_a the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n and_o continent_n and_o likewise_o of_o deacon_n and_o priest_n for_o in_o truth_n since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o admit_v into_o these_o office_n any_o that_o have_v marry_v a_o second_o wife_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o excellent_a dignity_n of_o preisthood_n and_o this_o holy_a church_n do_v sincere_o observe_v yet_o do_v not_o the_o church_n admit_v any_o into_o those_o office_n that_o be_v the_o husband_n but_o of_o one_o wife_n who_o wife_n be_v yet_o lyve_v with_o he_o in_o the_o fellowship_n of_o marriage_n sed_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la ab_fw-la una_fw-la continuit_fw-la aut_fw-la in_o vidui●●te_fw-la vixit_fw-la but_o he_o only_o that_o either_o be_v never_o marry_v or_o that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o wife_n lyve_v unmarried_a the_o church_n receave_v into_o the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n priest_n bishop_n or_o subdeacon_n which_o be_v especial_o observe_v where_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n be_v sincere_o keep_v but_o thou_o will_v say_v unto_o we_o that_o in_o many_o place_n priest_n and_o deacon_n do_v live_v in_o wedlock_n but_o this_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o canon_n hitherto_o and_o further_o be_v the_o convince_a word_n of_o this_o holy_a and_o learned_a father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o evidence_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n in_o this_o question_n and_o against_o protestant_n that_o m._n middleton_n flat_o say_v epiphanius_n be_v too_o partial_o 143._o middleton_n sup_v pag._n 143._o affect_v in_o this_o point_n and_o hereuppon_o thus_o i_o argue_v again_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v so_o plain_o and_o direct_o hold_v and_o maintain_v by_o the_o learned_a holy_a father_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n that_o the_o present_a protestant_a adversary_n otherwise_o seem_v to_o allow_v these_o father_n confess_v it_o to_o be_v their_o opinion_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v and_o observe_v but_o this_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o priest_n continency_n and_o vow_n of_o chastity_n be_v such_o therefore_o to_o be_v embrace_v and_o observe_v the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_o true_a both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n in_o show_n at_o the_o jest_n allow_v the_o primative_a church_n and_o father_n thereof_o for_o judge_n in_o question_n of_o religion_n the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v first_o m._n middleton_n acknowledge_v s._n epiphanius_n s._n hierome_n s._n chrisostome_n and_o s._n ambrose_n to_o be_v so_o plain_a against_o their_o marriage_n in_o the_o clergy_n and_o their_o doctrine_n against_o vow_n of_o chastity_n that_o have_v write_v of_o s._n epiphanius_n as_o before_o he_o add_v of_o s._n hierome_n thus_o he_o make_v unciwill_n entroade_n against_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n 138._o middleton_n supra_fw-la pag._n 134._o pag._n 138._o in_o this_o point_n of_o s._n chrisostome_n thus_o chrisostome_n in_o his_o vehemency_n go_v beyond_o measure_n in_o reprehend_v and_o the_o christian_n of_o his_o time_n in_o their_o lightness_n go_v beyond_o measure_n in_o vowe_a of_o s._n ambrose_n thus_o ambrose_n have_v the_o apostolical_a 134._o pag._n 134._o dragon_n the_o devil_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ancient_a father_n in_o general_a in_o this_o matter_n he_o speak_v in_o these_o term_n neither_o 133._o middleton_n sup_v pag._n 133._o be_v it_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n allow_v vow_n of_o chastity_n
and_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n and_o again_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v not_o 334._o pag._n 334._o fit_a judge_n to_o determine_v either_o of_o priest_n marriage_n or_o vow_n of_o chastity_n m._n wotton_n well_o perceive_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o holy_a primative_a church_n in_o those_o unspotted_a day_n deal_v as_o free_o with_o we_o in_o these_o word_n such_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n in_o single_a life_n 491._o wotton_n def_n of_o perk._n pag._n 491._o in_o the_o primative_a church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v for_o that_o antiquity_n shall_v afford_v we_o any_o testimony_n against_o the_o practice_n and_o judgement_n of_o those_o day_n then_o how_o graceless_a and_o impudent_a be_v these_o man_n to_o cite_v both_o father_n and_o counsel_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o in_o their_o conscience_n and_o knowledge_n they_o both_o understand_v in_o themselves_o and_o publish_v thus_o unto_o the_o world_n they_o utter_o deny_v and_o disallow_v whole_o and_o clear_o teach_v the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o contradictory_n to_o protestant_n assertion_n whether_o they_o be_v greek_n or_o latin_n and_o this_o in_o so_o serious_a manner_n that_o such_o breach_n of_o chastity_n vow_v which_o m._n perkins_n confess_v to_o be_v above_o 1200._o year_n old_a be_v call_v incest_n and_o punish_v with_o excommunication_n from_o whence_o i_o argue_v thus_o further_o that_o which_o by_o holy_a father_n be_v call_v incest_n and_o by_o allow_v general_a council_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n censure_v with_o excommunication_n be_v not_o to_o be_v adjudge_v lawful_a but_o the_o contrary_n but_o breach_n of_o the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n now_o above_o 1200._o year_n annex_v to_o preisthood_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v adjudge_v lawful_a but_o the_o contrary_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a and_o the_o minor_a thus_o prove_v by_o m._n perkins_n in_o these_o word_n epiphanius_n in_o his_o 201._o perk_n probl_a pag._n 201._o 61._o heresy_n say_v they_o that_o marry_v after_o they_o vow_v do_v sin_n and_o enjoin_v they_o penance_n so_o augustine_n and_o hierome_n viduit_fw-la c._n 9_o after_o these_o marriadge_n begin_v to_o be_v account_v of_o some_o for_o a_o more_o grevous_a sin_n after_o the_o year_n 380._o basile_n call_v these_o marriadge_n incest_n the_o offence_n of_o whoredom_n and_o adultery_n in_o his_o hook_n of_o virginity_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o 15._o canon_n they_o be_v punish_v with_o excommunication_n but_o they_o will_v say_v the_o late_a greek_a church_n use_v more_o liberty_n in_o suffer_v the_o use_n of_o marriage_n in_o holy_a order_n though_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o that_o be_v under_o the_o western_a and_o roman_a church_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n yet_o thus_o i_o demonstrate_v that_o they_o neither_o agree_v with_o the_o ancient_a nor_o present_a greek_n in_o this_o question_n but_o make_v lust_n licentiousness_n and_o liberty_n to_o be_v their_o law_n for_o proof_n whereof_o i_o argue_v thus_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a law_n to_o the_o greek_n be_v as_o d._n feild_n write_v the_o 13._o 101._o field_n l._n 3._o c._n 18._o pag._n 101._o canon_n of_o the_o 6._o general_a council_n otherwise_o the_o 13._o canon_n make_v in_o trullo_n do_v only_o licence_v subdeacons_n deacon_n and_o priest_n marry_v before_o order_n not_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o their_o wife_n but_o to_o abstain_v from_o they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o turn_n that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n when_o they_o sacrifice_v as_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthadge_n in_o the_o 2._o canon_n define_v but_o the_o father_n say_v that_o they_o know_v it_o deliver_v for_o a_o canon_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o deacon_n or_o priest_n in_o their_o ordination_n profess_v that_o they_o will_v not_o any_o more_o company_n with_o their_o wife_n but_o both_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o protestant_n be_v contrary_a marry_v both_o before_o and_o after_o order_n not_o regard_v any_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o deny_v it_o and_o be_v under_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o profess_v open_a disobedience_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o it_o and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o latin_a but_o to_o the_o greek_a church_n also_o for_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n neither_o their_o bishop_n religious_a man_n or_o woman_n or_o votary_n of_o chastity_n be_v permit_v to_o marry_v but_o for_o such_o to_o marry_v be_v adjudge_v sacrilege_n in_o that_o church_n the_o word_n of_o their_o patriarch_n hieremias_n be_v these_o whosoever_o epilog_n hierem._n in_o cen_n in_o epilog_n shall_v not_o perform_v the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n do_v incur_v the_o most_o filthy_a sin_n of_o sacrilege_n and_o to_o perform_v such_o vow_n be_v the_o most_o angelical_a and_o excellent_a life_n that_o can_v be_v lead_v on_o earth_n therefore_o we_o must_v great_o extol_v monastical_a life_n and_o conversation_n therefore_o these_o protestant_n not_o only_o permit_v and_o tollerate_v but_o incite_v provoke_a and_o procure_v bishop_n monk_n friar_n nun_n and_o all_o votaty_n to_o marriage_n be_v by_o this_o censure_n guilty_a of_o the_o filthy_a sin_n of_o sacrilege_n and_o agree_v with_o no_o church_n greek_n or_o latin_a in_o this_o point_n and_o question_n but_o these_o man_n in_o their_o theatre_n and_o else_o object_n where_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v marry_v priest_n in_o ireland_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n malachy_n and_o in_o etc._n speed_z in_o theatr._n pag._n 145._o etc._n etc._n england_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n dunstan_n our_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n but_o they_o have_v be_v tell_v before_o even_o from_o primative_a saint_n answ_n and_o doctor_n that_o wheresoever_o and_o whensoever_o such_o be_v it_o be_v a_o error_n and_o intrude_v abuse_n and_o not_o accord_v to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o answell_o by_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n that_o such_o and_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v or_o now_o be_v without_o proof_n that_o they_o be_v good_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v they_o may_v prove_v murder_n treason_n adultery_n incest_n sacrilege_n blasphemy_n and_o whatsoever_o villainy_n and_o impiety_n to_o be_v holy_a or_o justifiable_a thing_n for_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o only_o in_o one_o or_o two_o kingedome_n in_o one_o or_o two_o time_n but_o be_v and_o have_v be_v with_o such_o wicked_a man_n in_o all_o time_n and_o kingedome_n and_o to_o let_v they_o know_v by_o their_o own_o authority_n that_o it_o be_v so_o in_o this_o their_o objection_n wicked_a man_n that_o be_v thus_o marry_v or_o allow_v it_o and_o holy_a and_o saint_n that_o forbid_v and_o condemn_v it_o they_o themselves_o in_o this_o their_o theatre_n witness_n in_o these_o word_n s._n malachy_n 145._o theatr._fw-la sup_n n._n 9_o pag._n 145._o who_o life_n s._n bernard_n write_v prohibit_v priest_n marriadge_n in_o ireland_n and_o to_o assure_v we_o further_o that_o they_o be_v holy_a man_n that_o forbid_v these_o marriadge_n and_o the_o high_a authority_n by_o their_o own_o judgement_n before_o by_o which_o they_o be_v forbid_v thus_o they_o testify_v in_o these_o word_n pope_n gregory_n send_v hither_o into_o england_n 47._o theat_v pag._n 421._o n._n 47._o his_o bull_n with_o damninge_v curse_n against_o the_o marry_a clergy_n commaundinge_a that_o none_o shall_v hear_v their_o mass_n and_o thus_o again_o pope_n gregory_n in_o a_o general_a synod_n exclude_v the_o marry_a priest_n from_o execution_n of_o their_o holy_a office_n and_o forbid_v the_o lie_v man_n to_o hear_v their_o mass_n and_o our_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n 373._o pag._n 373._o then_o by_o their_o own_o sentence_n a_o saint_n condemn_v they_o miraculous_o as_o they_o testify_v so_o be_v they_o condemn_v by_o other_o counsel_n and_o authority_n the_o sanctity_n of_o s._n dunstan_n 372._o pag._n 371._o 372._o his_o miracle_n gift_n of_o prophetie_n and_o verify_v prophety_n of_o the_o calamity_n and_o punishment_n which_o god_n inflict_v upon_o the_o prince_n and_o favourer_n maintain_v those_o wicked_a marriage_n be_v in_o some_o part_n testify_v in_o their_o own_o theatre_n the_o prince_n that_o 7._o theat_v pag._n 377._o etc._n etc._n cap._n 43._o l._n 7._o disallow_v they_o be_v holy_a and_o saint_n among_o which_o be_v king_n and_o s._n edward_n the_o martyr_n murder_v and_o martyr_v by_o the_o favourite_n of_o marry_a priest_n among_o which_o be_v his_o mother_n in_o law_n queen_n elfrida_n and_o her_o son_n his_o half_a brother_n ethelred_n after_o king_n by_o this_o martyrdom_n where_o upon_o these_o man_n themselves_o have_v thus_o register_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o subject_n draw_v from_o their_o sovereign_n sup_v theat_v sup_v dunstan_n prophecy_n against_o their_o wickedness_n a_o cloud_n of_o blood_n and_o fire_n and_o many_o extreme_a misery_n of_o that_o tyme._n dunstan_n
further_o prophesi_v of_o other_o calamity_n to_o the_o land_n after_o his_o death_n queen_n elfrida_n this_o great_a patroness_n of_o those_o wicked_a marriadge_n and_o murderess_n of_o that_o bless_a king_n &_o martyr_n acknowledge_v her_o error_n and_o do_v perpetual_a penance_n for_o those_o impiety_n their_o own_o word_n thereof_o be_v these_o elfrida_n the_o second_o wise_a of_o king_n edgar_n procure_v the_o 17._o theat_v pag._n 372._o n._n 17._o murder_n of_o king_n edward_n her_o son_n in_o law_n that_o her_o own_o son_n ethelred_n may_v come_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o afterward_o to_o purify_v he_o and_o her_o husband_n ghost_n and_o to_o stop_n the_o people_n speech_n of_o so_o wicked_a a_o fact_n she_o found_v the_o abbey_n of_o amsbury_n and_o whorwell_n in_o the_o 10._o pag._n 374._o n._n 10._o county_n of_o wiltshire_n and_o southampton_a in_o which_o late_a she_o live_v with_o great_a repentance_n and_o penance_n until_o the_o day_n of_o her_o death_n but_o both_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o they_o that_o repent_v not_o be_v by_o these_o man_n relation_n odious_a and_o execrable_a i_o will_v only_o exemplify_v in_o two_o king_n ethelred_n before_o relate_v and_o king_n edwyne_n before_o he_o both_o maintainer_n of_o priest_n marriage_n of_o king_n edwyne_n they_o write_v in_o these_o word_n 3._o theat_v pag._n 366._o n._n 7._o 8._o pag._n 369._o n._n 2._o 3._o king_n edwyne_n the_o day_n of_o his_o coronation_n before_o his_o noble_n sittinge_n in_o counsel_n at_o that_o age_n not_o above_o thirteen_o year_n old_a with_o shameless_a and_o unprincely_a lust_n abuse_v a_o lady_n of_o great_a estate_n and_o his_o near_a kinswoman_n he_o be_v a_o great_a enemy_n unto_o the_o monkish_a order_n who_o from_o the_o monastery_n of_o malmesbury_n glastenbury_n and_o other_o he_o expel_v place_v marry_v priest_n in_o their_o rome_n dunstan_n likewise_o the_o abbot_n saint_n of_o glostenbury_n he_o banish_v the_o realm_n for_o his_o overbold_a reprehension_n etc._n etc._n his_o subject_n deny_v he_o obedience_n and_o set_v up_o prince_n edgar_n his_o brother_n in_o mercia_n and_o northumberland_n not_o full_o fourteen_o year_n old_a edwyne_n then_o raigninge_v in_o a_o still_o decay_a state_n be_v hold_v of_o such_o be_v subject_n in_o no_o better_a esteem_n than_o be_v jehoram_n of_o judah_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v live_v without_o be_v desire_v for_o very_a grief_n whereof_o after_o four_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n he_o end_v his_o life_n his_o wife_n think_v to_o be_v to_o near_a in_o the_o blood_n royal_a to_o be_v match_v with_o he_o in_o spousal_a bed_n the_o subject_n dislikinge_v of_o the_o unlawful_a marriage_n the_o cause_n of_o dunstan_n banishment_n fail_v by_o degree_n to_o perform_v their_o duty_n to_o their_o king_n and_o she_o they_o likewise_o force_v to_o a_o separation_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o his_o regardless_o government_n the_o misery_n and_o punishment_n of_o king_n ethelred_n and_o this_o kingdom_n for_o his_o syn_n they_o recompt_n in_o this_o manner_n ethelred_n not_o able_a 377._o theat_v pag._n 376._o 377._o to_o resist_v the_o dane_n his_o subject_n not_o love_v he_o pay_v unto_o they_o 10000_o pound_n to_o depart_v an_o other_o peace_n he_o purchase_v with_o 16000_o pound_n the_o next_o composition_n 20000._o pound_n then_o 24000._o pound_n then_o 30000._o pound_n and_o last_o 40000._o pound_n until_o the_o land_n be_v empty_v of_o all_o the_o coin_n the_o kingdom_n of_o her_o glory_n the_o noble_n of_o courage_n commons_o of_o content_n and_o the_o sovereign_n of_o his_o wont_a respect_n and_o observance_n the_o misery_n of_o this_o land_n for_o the_o syn_n of_o the_o patron_n of_o such_o marriadge_n as_o now_o be_v defend_v and_o honour_v in_o england_n which_o then_o it_o feel_v be_v to_o many_o and_o lamentable_a to_o be_v remember_v at_o this_o time_n and_o a_o man_n may_v just_o call_v it_o a_o strange_a example_n that_o among_o other_o strange_a punishment_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o that_o great_a patron_n of_o cranmer_n that_o marry_v bishop_n that_o mare_v religion_n and_o supreme_a head_n of_o such_o a_o church_n that_o in_o his_o life_n time_n so_o jumble_v tumble_v and_o tumble_v the_o world_n together_o shall_v have_v no_o better_a commendation_n of_o these_o protestant_n now_o but_o to_o be_v rank_v by_o they_o as_o the_o chief_a among_o wicked_a and_o just_o punish_v english_a king_n in_o their_o late_a publish_a history_n of_o the_o world_n in_o these_o word_n now_o for_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o if_o pref_o history_n of_o the_o world_n in_o pref_o all_o the_o picture_n and_o pattern_n of_o a_o merciless_a prince_n be_v lose_v in_o the_o world_n they_o may_v all_o again_o be_v paint_v to_o the_o life_n out_o of_o the_o story_n of_o this_o king_n and_o because_o protestant_n memory_n serve_v they_o not_o to_o call_v to_o mind_n the_o holiness_n sanctity_n and_o saint_n that_o have_v be_v in_o our_o english_a catholic_a clergy_n but_o like_o filthy_a swine_n desire_v to_o tumble_v moil_n and_o root_n in_o dirt_n let_v they_o cast_v over_o their_o account_n through_o out_o the_o history_n of_o this_o kingdom_n begin_v with_o their_o own_o marriadge_n and_o time_n and_o so_o ascendinge_v to_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o this_o land_n to_o christ_n and_o it_o will_v be_v no_o difficult_a auditt_n to_o make_v that_o they_o themselves_o and_o those_o which_o be_v marry_v as_o these_o be_v be_v the_o most_o disorder_a profane_a and_o irreligious_a that_o be_v in_o our_o english_a clergy_n let_v they_o make_v the_o calculation_n i_o may_v not_o now_o intend_v it_o my_o method_n will_v not_o allow_v it_o be_v fit_a for_o such_o as_o be_v partaker_n of_o such_o impiety_n only_o to_o begin_v their_o reckon_n i_o must_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n out_o of_o their_o theatre_n and_o other_o their_o own_o history_n pen_v by_o protestant_n that_o as_o this_o kingdom_n of_o our_o english_a or_o saxon_a christian_n have_v be_v but_o twice_o conquer_v and_o overrun_v once_o by_o the_o dane_n then_o by_o the_o norman_n the_o great_a misery_n and_o punishment_n it_o have_v endure_v so_o the_o same_o their_o theatre_n other_o history_n and_o protestant_a writing_n never_o object_n unto_o we_o more_o marry_v and_o disorder_a priest_n and_o clergy_n man_n then_o at_o those_o time_n god_n of_o his_o mercy_n grant_v that_o their_o three_o state_n of_o marry_a minister_n presage_v we_o better_a bydeing_n and_o bring_v we_o great_a comfort_n of_o vow_n and_o profession_n of_o perpetual_a chastity_n and_o other_o work_n of_o perfection_n it_o be_v further_o entreat_v in_o the_o proper_a question_n of_o such_o holy_a and_o religious_a life_n and_o conversation_n chapter_n xviii_o of_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a after_o this_o let_v we_o entreat_v of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o purgatory_n and_o because_o these_o protestant_n before_o have_v give_v so_o great_a allowance_n to_o the_o greek_a church_n especial_o d._n feild_n intitul_a the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o three_o titul_n field_n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o in_o titul_n book_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o schism_n and_o kind_n of_o it_o and_o that_o it_o no_o way_n appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n etc._n etc._n be_v heretical_a or_o in_o damnable_a schism_n and_o it_o be_v their_o common_a assertion_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v only_o teach_v by_o the_o roman_a and_o not_o greek_a church_n i_o will_v first_o thus_o argue_v from_o the_o authority_n thereof_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o that_o church_n which_o be_v neither_o heretical_a nor_o damnable_o scismaticall_a can_v be_v heretical_a nor_o damnable_a but_o orthodox_n and_o catholic_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v teach_v by_o this_o so_o justify_v church_n the_o greek_a church_n therefore_o not_o heretical_a nor_o damnable_a but_o orthodox_n and_o catholic_a the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_o true_a for_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o any_o company_n or_o private_a parson_n that_o give_v unto_o it_o the_o denomination_n heretical_a schismatical_a orthodox_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o these_o protestant_a testimony_n follow_v first_o the_o protestant_a relator_n write_v of_o this_o greek_a church_n speak_v thus_o with_o rome_n 54._o relation_n of_o relig._n c._n 53._o or_o c._n 54._o they_o concur_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o general_o in_o the_o service_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o pray_v to_o saint_n in_o auriculare_fw-la confession_n in_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o these_o without_o any_o or_o with_o no_o material_a difference_n they_o hold_v purgatory_n also_o and_o worship_v of_o picture_n therefore_o these_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n &_o the_o rest_n must_v needs_o
minor_a prove_v out_o of_o their_o public_o allow_v and_o reconfirm_v communion_n book_n where_o in_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a their_o minister_n be_v appoint_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o party_n decease_v in_o these_o word_n that_o we_o with_o this_o our_o brother_n and_o all_o other_o depart_v god_n comm._n book_n tit._n burial_n of_o the_o dead●_n near_o the_o end_n §._o allmightie_a god_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o thy_o holy_a name_n may_v have_v our_o perfect_a consummation_n and_o bliss_n both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o eternal_a and_o everlasting_a glory_n amen_o if_o this_o prayer_n that_o people_n decease_v may_v come_v to_o heaven_n body_n and_o soul_n man_n have_v no_o other_o part_n to_o be_v pray_v for_o be_v not_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a nothing_o can_v be_v call_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o for_o their_o salvation_n and_o so_o i_o end_v this_o question_n with_o this_o sentence_n of_o m._n higgon_n in_o his_o public_a sermon_n 1610._o theophil_n higg_n serm_n 3._o mart._n 1610._o at_o s._n paul_n cross_n give_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o these_o word_n as_o there_o be_v a_o death_n in_o sin_v and_o a_o death_n to_o sin_v so_o there_o be_v a_o double_a resurrection_n the_o first_o a_o culpa_fw-la from_o sin_v the_o second_o a_o paena_fw-la from_o the_o punishment_n which_o follow_v theruppon_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o sin_v the_o ground_n of_o purgatory_n and_o satisfaction_n after_o death_n be_v oftentimes_o not_o satisfy_v answer_v or_o to_o use_v his_o own_o phrase_n not_o rise_v from_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n of_o hell_n due_a for_o great_a syn_n be_v ever_o remit_v and_o rise_v from_o in_o his_o resurrection_n a_o culpa_fw-la from_o sin_v otherwise_o a_o man_n now_o entitle_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o salvation_n shall_v also_o be_v guilty_a of_o hell_n and_o damnation_n save_v and_o damn_a in_o heaven_n and_o hell_n together_o and_o upon_o this_o and_o other_o such_o holy_a ground_n these_o protestant_n in_o their_o late_a theatre_n recompt_n unto_o we_o so_o many_o hundred_o etc._n theat_v of_o great_a brit._n etc._n etc._n of_o religeous_a house_n found_v by_o holy_a king_n prince_n and_o other_o in_o england_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o themselves_o their_o ancestor_n posterity_n and_o other_o friend_n chapter_n xix_o teache_v how_o there_o be_v 7._o sacrament_n in_o number_n by_o these_o protestant_n accord_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v end_v all_o other_o question_n to_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n and_o accord_v to_o the_o request_n and_o demand_n of_o protestant_n desiringe_v to_o be_v satisfy_v therein_o and_o perform_v this_o from_o themselves_o and_o own_o writing_n i_o will_v proceed_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o first_o of_o their_o number_n thus_o set_v down_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n there_o be_v seven_o sacrament_n sacrament_n council_n trid._n decret_a de_fw-fr sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n institute_v by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n neither_o more_o nor_o few_o baptism_n confirmation_n eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n order_n matrimony_n for_o defence_n and_o proof_n of_o which_o doctrine_n by_o these_o protestant_n themselves_o thus_o i_o argue_v whatsoever_o doctrine_n a_o confess_v true_a general_a council_n have_v authority_n to_o bind_v all_o by_o these_o protestant_n before_o have_v determine_v in_o this_o question_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o follow_v but_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v seven_o sacrament_n be_v thus_o determine_v by_o such_o general_a council_n and_o bind_n authority_n therefore_o to_o be_v receive_v and_o follow_v the_o first_o proposition_n be_v grant_v before_o and_o must_v needs_o be_v think_v so_o equal_a to_o all_o protestant_n that_o how_o soever_o they_o think_v of_o the_o infallible_a sentence_n of_o such_o assembly_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o may_v be_v so_o partial_a but_o to_o prefer_v a_o general_a council_n to_o any_o protestant_a assembly_n censure_n sentence_n or_o decree_n the_o second_o be_v evident_o prove_v suppose_v what_o be_v write_v before_o even_o by_o protestant_n of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o florence_n and_o for_o such_o with_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o not_o only_o acknowledge_v by_o d._n willet_n and_o m._n parkes_n but_o legis_fw-la willet_n limbom_n parkes_n pag._n 137._o 180._o gennadius_n in_o defence_n council_n flor._n council_n florent_fw-la de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la novae_fw-la legis_fw-la by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o greece_n himself_o in_o his_o defence_n thereof_o where_o it_o be_v thus_o decree_v both_o with_o assent_n of_o grecian_n &_o armenian_n novae_fw-la legis_fw-la septem_fw-la sunt_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la scilicet_fw-la baptismus_fw-la confirmatio_fw-la eucharistia_n poenitentia_fw-la extrema_fw-la vnctio_fw-la ordo_fw-la &_o matrimonium_fw-la &c._n &c._n there_o be_v seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n that_o be_v baptism_n confirmation_n eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n order_n and_o matrimony_n which_o do_v much_o differ_v from_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n for_o they_o do_v not_o cause_n grace_n but_o do_v only_o figure_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n but_o these_o of_o we_o both_o contain_v grace_n and_o give_v it_o unto_o they_o that_o worthy_o receive_v they_o hitherto_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o holy_a general_a council_n receive_v by_o all_o christendom_n latin_n armenian_n jacobynes_n grecian_n from_o whence_o i_o further_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n whatsoever_o doctrine_n essential_a in_o religion_n such_o as_o sacrament_n be_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v neither_o heretical_a nor_o scismaticall_a be_v to_o be_v embrace_v but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v be_v such_o be_v likewise_o teach_v by_o the_o protestant_n true_a greek_a church_n therefore_o to_o be_v embrace_v the_o mayor_n be_v also_o prove_v in_o the_o last_o argument_n and_o further_o confirm_v in_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n upon_o protestant_n in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v a_o holy_a 7._o hierém_fw-la in_o censur_n cap._n 7._o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o all_o true_a christian_a man_n in_o this_o catholic_a and_o true_a believe_a church_n there_o be_v seven_o divine_a sacrament_n baptism_n the_o unction_n of_o holy_a ointment_n holy_a communion_n order_n matrimony_n penance_n and_o the_o oil_n of_o extreme_a unction_n and_o they_o further_o prosecute_v as_o also_o the_o cite_a general_a council_n of_o florence_n do_v the_o institution_n form_n matter_n effect_n and_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o these_o seven_o holy_a sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n again_o i_o suppose_v that_o catholic_n in_o their_o definition_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n require_v a_o contain_v and_o give_v of_o grace_n by_o these_o holy_a sacrament_n beside_o their_o signification_n thereof_o be_v only_a sign_n seal_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o common_a protestant_a opinion_n be_v to_o be_v far_o more_o restrict_v and_o limit_v then_o that_o of_o protestant_n because_o many_o more_o thing_n be_v and_o may_v be_v sign_n of_o any_o thing_n than_o both_o sign_n and_o cause_n as_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a in_o all_o genericall_a and_o specifical_a difference_n for_o example_n under_o animal_n a_o lyve_a creature_n be_v contain_v more_o then_o under_o animal_n rational●_fw-la a_o lyve_a creature_n with_o reason_n only_o limit_v to_o man_n who_o otherwise_o abstractinge_v from_o his_o rationalitie_n be_v with_o all_o other_o lyve_v creature_n comprehend_v under_o the_o genus_fw-la animal_n a_o lyve_a creature_n so_o a_o sign_n of_o grace_n as_o well_o agree_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n as_o to_o those_o of_o the_o gospel_n but_o not_o to_o contain_v and_o give_v grace_n only_o proper_a to_o those_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o be_v recite_v before_o from_o the_o general_a council_n of_o florence_n and_o be_v at_o etc._n council_n trident._n decret_a d●_n sacramentis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n large_a set_v down_o against_o protestant_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n this_o suppose_v which_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v i_o argue_v thus_o all_o thing_n that_o agree_v with_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v sacrament_n but_o according_a to_o protestant_n all_v those_o seven_o before_o remember_v baptism_n confirmation_n eucharist_n penance_n extreame-vnction_n order_n and_o matrimony_n agree_v with_o and_o have_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n therefore_o they_o be_v sacrament_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a because_o in_o logic_n the_o thing_n define_v and_o definition_n be_v convertible_n as_o this_o man_n and_o a_o reasonable_a creature_n whoesoever_o be_v the_o one_o
impress_v in_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v a_o certain_a spiritual_a and_o indelible_a sign_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v iterate_v for_o proof_n of_o which_o doctrine_n by_o english_a protestant_n i_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o greek_a church_n neither_o heretical_a nor_o scismatical_a but_o orthodox_n by_o these_o protestant_n ot_fw-mi by_o a_o general_a council_n who_o decree_n and_o sentence_n bind_v all_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v by_o they_o much_o more_o if_o both_o those_o their_o rule_n so_o confirm_v it_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o indelible_a character_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n be_v teach_v and_o approve_v both_o by_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o a_o general_a council_n that_o of_o florence_n for_o such_o allow_v by_o they_o before_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v embrace_v by_o they_o the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a by_o their_o grant_n before_o and_o the_o minor_a thus_o prove_v first_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o hieremias_n their_o patriarch_n in_o their_o censure_n 11._o hierem._n in_o censur_n cap._n 11._o upon_o protestant_n in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n have_v so_o censure_v and_o the_o general_a council_n of_o florence_n with_o the_o assert_v of_o the_o same_o greek_a church_n armenian_n jacobines_n and_o all_o christendom_n have_v define_v it_o in_o these_o word_n inter_fw-la haec_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la tria_fw-la sunt_fw-la baptismus_fw-la arm._n council_n flor._n in_o union_n arm._n confirmatio_fw-la &_o ordo_fw-la quae_fw-la characterem_fw-la i._o spiritual_fw-la quoddam_fw-la signum_fw-la à_fw-la caeteris_fw-la distinctum_fw-la imprimunt_fw-la in_o anima_fw-la indelebile_a etc._n etc._n among_o these_o sacrament_n there_o be_v three_o baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n which_o impress_n in_o the_o soul_n a_o character_n that_o be_v a_o certain_a spiritual_a sign_n distinct_a from_o other_o indelible_a whereupon_o they_o be_v not_o iterate_v in_o the_o same_o parson_n but_o the_o other_o four_o do_v not_o impress_n a_o character_n and_o admit_v iteration_n to_o be_v brief_a i_o argue_v thus_o once_o for_o all_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v general_o maintain_v not_o only_o by_o all_o professor_n of_o it_o but_o also_o acknowledge_v and_o defend_v by_o they_o that_o be_v esteem_v learned_a among_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o and_o profess_v the_o same_o religion_n with_o they_o be_v true_a but_o this_o doctrine_n of_o a_o character_n be_v such_o therefore_o it_o be_v true_a the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o apparent_a for_o no_o more_o than_o friend_n and_o adversary_n learned_a can_v consent_v to_o any_o truth_n the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant_a doctor_n follow_v join_v in_o religion_n with_o they_o that_o impugn_v and_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o d._n feild_n 15._o feild_n l._n 1._o cap._n 15._o acknowledge_v a_o character_n in_o baptism_n and_o to_o remain_v even_o in_o the_o excommunicate_a and_o so_o indelible_a d._n covell_n affirm_v the_o same_o of_o baptism_n and_o order_n and_o seem_v to_o insinuate_v it_o of_o confirmation_n he_o write_v of_o it_o in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v not_o amiss_o both_o term_v a_o kind_n of_o mark_n 91._o covell_a def_n of_o hook_n pa._n 87._o 88_o 91._o or_o character_n and_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v indelible_a and_o for_o order_n he_o add_v thus_o for_o ministerial_a power_n be_v a_o work_n of_o separation_n because_o it_o sever_v they_o that_o have_v it_o from_o other_o man_n &_o make_v they_o a_o special_a order_n consecrate_v unto_o the_o service_n of_o the_o most_o high_a in_o thing_n wherewith_o other_o may_v not_o meddle_v i_o call_v it_o indelible_a because_o they_o which_o have_v once_o receive_v this_o power_n may_v not_o think_v to_o put_v it_o of_o and_o on_o like_o a_o cloak_n as_o the_o wether_n serve_v and_o again_o in_o this_o manner_n where_o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o estate_n with_o a_o 91_o sup._n pag._n 91_o impossibility_n to_o return_v there_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o account_v a_o indelible_a character_n to_o be_v imprint_v this_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n this_o form_n figure_n or_o character_n be_v call_v indelible_a because_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reiterated_a as_o protestant_n confess_v of_o baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v the_o character_n of_o order_n be_v a_o active_a power_n as_o the_o schoolman_n speak_v which_o give_v a_o ability_n public_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o those_o who_o the_o church_n have_v esteem_v fit_a the_o character_n of_o baptism_n be_v a_o passive_a power_n which_o make_v man_n fit_a to_o receive_v the_o rest_n and_o from_o hence_o not_o only_o be_v prove_v in_o as_o plain_a word_n as_o any_o schoolman_n or_o other_o catholic_a can_v speak_v the_o catholic_a opinion_n of_o a_o character_n but_o also_o that_o order_n and_o other_o beside_o they_o allow_v for_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v so_o esteem_v as_o his_o last_o word_n the_o rest_n insinuate_v and_o this_o suffice_v of_o this_o question_n chapter_n xxi_o prove_v by_o these_o protestant's_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o gospel_n give_v grace_n and_z as_o the_o school_n speak_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la by_o the_o work_n wrought_v concern_v the_o validity_n and_o grace_n of_o sacrament_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v thus_o if_o any_o 7._o council_n trid._n sess_n 7._o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v not_o give_v grace_n by_o the_o work_n wrought_v opere_fw-la operato_fw-la but_o that_o only_a faith_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n suffice_v to_o obtain_v grace_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n and_o to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o present_a protestant_n of_o england_n be_v or_o by_o their_o own_o writing_n aught_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n thus_o i_o argue_v whatsoever_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v confirm_v both_o by_o the_o public_a proceed_n and_o private_a writing_n of_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n aught_o to_o be_v allow_v and_o embrace_v by_o they_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v the_o efficacy_n of_o sacrament_n that_o they_o cause_n grace_n in_o the_o worthy_a and_o due_o dispose_v receiver_n of_o they_o and_o that_o ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la as_o the_o council_n before_o and_o our_o school_n speak_v be_v such_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v allow_v and_o embrace_v by_o they_o for_o true_a the_o mayor_n be_v evident_o true_a and_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o no_o man_n may_v or_o can_v hold_v against_o his_o own_o opinion_n or_o that_o public_a rule_n and_o authority_n to_o which_o he_o have_v subscribe_v and_o submit_v himself_o in_o religion_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v thus_o prove_v and_o first_o by_o that_o chief_a rule_n their_o book_n of_o article_n 25._o book_n of_o articl_n of_o relig._n art_n 25._o to_o which_o they_o have_v all_o subscribe_v where_o it_o be_v thus_o define_v in_o their_o religion_n sacrament_n ordain_v of_o christ_n be_v effectual_a sign_n of_o grace_n and_o god_n good_a will_n towards_o we_o by_o the_o which_o he_o do_v work_v invisible_o in_o us._n and_o again_o in_o their_o new_o reform_a communion_n book_n in_o these_o word_n by_o this_o word_n sacrament_n i_o mean_v a_o catechis_n comm._n book_n refor_o titul_a catechis_n outward_a and_o visible_a sign_n of_o a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a grace_n give_v unto_o we_o ordain_v by_o christ_n himself_o as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o we_o receive_v the_o same_o therefore_o be_v grant_v by_o the_o great_a rule_n of_o religion_n which_o english_a protestant_n have_n that_o sacrament_n be_v effectual_a of_o grace_n and_o god_n favour_n give_v grace_n and_o mean_n whereby_o we_o receive_v grace_n and_o all_o english_a protestant_n minister_n have_v subscribe_v to_o these_o doctrine_n in_o those_o book_n they_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o sacrament_n be_v cause_n of_o grace_n for_o among_o cause_n the_o efficient_a and_o effectual_a be_v not_o only_o a_o cause_n but_o of_o extrinsecall_v cause_n by_o many_o degree_n the_o chief_a and_o be_v allow_v for_o such_o instrument_n and_o mean_n by_o which_o god_n work_v invisible_o in_o we_o and_o give_v grace_n and_o we_o so_o receive_v grace_n as_o their_o word_n be_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a instrumental_a cause_n of_o grace_n and_o such_o work_n in_o us._n and_o their_o same_o practical_a rule_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o communion_n book_n have_v the_o same_o doctrine_n concern_v baptism_n and_o consequent_o of_o all_o other_o prove_v by_o they_o to_o be_v sacrament_n one_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o all_o for_o in_o the_o treatise_n of_o baptism_n thus_o it_o prescribe_v the_o minister_n to_o speak_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o baptism_n of_o sup_v comm._n book_n titul_n public_a
a_o book_n entitle_v the_o english_a protestant_n recantation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n wherein_o be_v demonstrative_o prove_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o principal_a and_o best_a learned_a english_a protestant_n bishop_n and_o doctor_n and_o rule_n of_o their_o religion_n publish_v allow_v or_o subscribe_v unto_o by_o they_o since_o the_o come_n of_o our_o king_n james_n into_o england_n that_o not_o only_o all_o general_a ground_n of_o divinity_n be_v against_o they_o but_o in_o every_o particular_a chief_a question_n between_o catholic_n &_o they_o they_o be_v in_o error_n by_o their_o own_o judgement_n divide_v according_o into_o two_o part_n whereof_o the_o first_o entreat_v of_o those_o general_a ground_n the_o other_o of_o such_o particular_a controversy_n whereby_o will_v also_o manifeste_o appear_v the_o vanity_n of_o d._n morton_z protest_v bishop_n of_o chester_n his_o book_n call_v appeal_v or_o answer_v to_o the_o catholic_a author_n of_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o protestant_n apology_n psal_n 126._o v._n 1._o except_o our_o lord_n build_v the_o house_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a that_o build_v it_o with_o licence_n anno_fw-la 1617._o to_o all_o his_o well-beloved_a countryman_n english_a protestant_n especial_o persecutor_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n dve_o and_o most_o friendly_a i_o remember_v my_o service_n and_o best_a love_n unto_o you_o in_o malady_n and_o disease_n desperate_a usual_a remedy_n will_v not_o ●uer_v in_o controversy_n those_o that_o be_v and_o wrongeful_o distress_v when_o equal_a trial_n will_v not_o be_v grant_v must_v accept_v unequal_a or_o none_o at_o all_o your_o late_a commend_a history_n of_o the_o world_n recommend_v unto_o we_o for_o most_o true_a this_o sentence_n nothing_o can_v be_v a_o more_o excellent_a wittnessinge_n then_o where_o a_o enemy_n do_v approve_v our_o cause_n your_o d._n morton_n do_v testify_v as_o much_o and_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v it_o neither_o this_o that_o follow_v that_o in_o controversed_a question_n and_o their_o trial_n no_o condemnation_n be_v more_o approve_a then_o where_o man_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n be_v condemn_v by_o their_o own_o judgement_n thus_o in_o our_o law_n confession_n of_o wrong_n and_o evil_a behaviour_n be_v conviction_n and_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n a_o recantation_n but_o without_o some_o high_a commaundinge_a cause_n how_o shall_v we_o find_v such_o enforceinge_n and_o force_a witness_n balaam_n his_o ass_n speak_v not_o of_o himself_o nor_o caypha_n of_o himself_o do_v prophesy_v and_o in_o english_a protestant_n religion_n where_o every_o one_o be_v make_v a_o judge_n over_o all_o that_o will_v gain_n say_v he_o in_o their_o conceit_n no_o man_n will_v suppose_v or_o once_o imagine_v that_o any_o one_o will_v be_v find_v among_o they_o to_o give_v sentence_n against_o themselves_o who_o they_o value_v and_o esteem_v at_o so_o high_a a_o rate_n above_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o especial_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o hate_v and_o persecute_v so_o much_o yet_o because_o no_o other_o mean_n be_v leave_v i_o must_v build_v upon_o this_o unlevell_v ground_n and_o come_v for_o judgement_n at_o such_o a_o consistory_n only_o to_o take_v what_o they_o shall_v give_v and_o have_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o please_v to_o allow_v which_o i_o hope_v will_v be_v that_o which_o be_v express_v in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o book_n the_o same_o to_o which_o they_o have_v all_o swear_v or_o subscribe_v ratify_v or_o confirm_v print_a and_o publish_v for_o their_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n i_o dare_v not_o go_v hygh_o to_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n nor_o bring_v the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n in_o other_o country_n jest_n i_o receive_v for_o answer_n as_o other_o have_v do_v that_o they_o stand_v not_o upon_o what_o foreign_a and_o former_a protestant_n have_v teach_v which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o only_a cavillons_n exception_n to_o be_v at_o variance_n or_o defiance_n with_o they_o in_o faith_n of_o who_o church_n as_o they_o name_v it_o they_o will_v be_v member_n yet_o to_o avoid_v all_o suspicion_n and_o colour_n of_o evasion_n though_o never_o so_o frivolous_a because_o no_o protestant_n may_v deny_v but_o that_o be_v their_o protestant_n religion_n in_o england_n under_o our_o king_n supreme_a head_n style_v of_o that_o church_n which_o he_o by_o his_o law_n and_o proceed_n with_o their_o consent_n and_o assentinge_v have_v here_o establish_v and_o this_o their_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n by_o oath_n or_o subscription_n have_v since_o then_o confirm_v and_o by_o their_o publish_a print_a writing_n defend_v or_o maintain_v or_o by_o their_o religion_n ought_v so_o to_o do_v i_o will_v only_o insist_v in_o this_o their_o own_o privilege_a and_o allow_v testimony_n and_o authority_n and_o assume_v by_o they_o to_o prove_v not_o only_o that_o all_o ground_n of_o religion_n in_o general_a do_v prove_v and_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o condemn_v this_o protestant_n religion_n but_o further_o and_o demonstrative_o to_o manifest_v by_o true_a consequence_n that_o in_o every_o chief_a question_n between_o this_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n they_o be_v in_o error_n and_o we_o in_o truth_n which_o will_v be_v more_o than_o evident_a demonstration_n against_o d._n morton_n protestant_n bishop_n of_o chester_n his_o appeal_v or_o pretend_a answer_n to_o the_o catholic_n author_n of_o the_o protestant_n apology_n and_o therefore_o be_v confident_o assure_v that_o i_o have_v true_o and_o full_o perform_v what_o i_o undertake_v by_o their_o so_o great_a advantage_n as_o to_o make_v they_o both_o witness_n and_o judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n i_o presume_v as_o it_o be_v so_o to_o name_v this_o book_n the_o english_a protestant_n recantation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n i_o wish_v it_o be_v as_o easy_a and_o no_o more_o difficult_a labour_n to_o bridle_v their_o will_n and_o appetite_n from_o liberty_n overmuch_o love_v of_o this_o world_n and_o wanton_a delight_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v to_o demonstrate_v to_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o be_v in_o error_n many_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v this_o but_o god_n and_o themselves_o must_v reform_v the_o other_o which_o of_o his_o great_a mercy_n i_o most_o humble_o beseech_v he_o to_o grant_v that_o they_o which_o so_o long_a time_n have_v only_o talk_v of_o reform_a church_n and_o religion_n may_v come_v to_o the_o true_a and_o real_a practice_n of_o reformation_n both_o in_o mind_n and_o manner_n which_o i_o hope_v they_o may_v the_o soener_o attain_v unto_o if_o they_o shall_v due_o consider_v how_o foul_a and_o deform_v the_o face_n of_o this_o their_o new_a doctrine_n be_v even_o as_o it_o be_v point_a by_o their_o own_o colour_n and_o pencell_n that_o which_o remain_v as_o my_o only_a suit_n to_o you_o be_v this_o not_o to_o be_v regardless_o of_o your_o best_a good_a not_o wilful_o to_o err_v from_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n to_o esteem_v of_o the_o sacred_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o it_o and_o friend_n to_o you_o shall_v conclude_v it_o worthy_a and_o let_v myself_o and_o labour_n enjoy_v your_o love_n as_o we_o shall_v deserve_v it_o and_o so_o i_o shall_v ever_o rest_v your_o most_o wellwishing_a contriman_n and_o friend_n author_n of_o this_o book_n the_o english_a protestan_v recantation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o first_o part_n chapter_n i._o proveinge_v by_o english_a protestant_a writer_n since_o the_o begin_v of_o his_o majesty_n reign_n in_o england_n that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o infallible_a judgement_n the_o protestant_n not_o so_o and_o so_o not_o the_o true_a church_n because_v the_o chief_a and_o most_o general_a controversy_n in_o religion_n in_o this_o time_n between_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n and_o their_o adversary_n their_o country_n persecutor_n and_o innovator_n be_v concern_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o where_o with_o who_o and_o what_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o property_n true_a note_n sign_n quality_n authority_n office_n and_o command_v of_o it_o i_o will_v first_o begin_v with_o that_o question_n in_o which_o i_o argue_v thus_o whatsoever_o company_n society_n consistorye_n judgement_n or_o authority_n be_v in_o time_n of_o difference_n about_o religion_n most_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v follow_v and_o obey_v and_o be_v the_o company_n of_o holy_a one_o the_o howsholde_n of_o faith_n spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n who_o communyon_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v direction_n follow_v and_o judgement_n to_o be_v rest_v in_o must_v needs_o both_o be_v privilege_v from_o error_n and_o to_o be_v obey_v in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n but_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o therefore_o free_a from_o error_n and_o to_o be_v obey_v in_o this_o business_n